mirror of
https://github.com/opsxcq/mirror-textfiles.com.git
synced 2025-09-09 04:20:57 +02:00
6579 lines
385 KiB
Plaintext
6579 lines
385 KiB
Plaintext
1881
|
|
THE PRINCE AND THE PAUPER
|
|
A TALE FOR YOUNG PEOPLE OF ALL AGES
|
|
by Mark Twain
|
|
PREFACE
|
|
PREFACE
|
|
|
|
I will set down a tale as it was told to me by one who had it of
|
|
his father, which latter had it of his father, this last having in
|
|
like manner had it of his father- and so on, back and still back,
|
|
three hundred years and more, the fathers transmitting it to the
|
|
sons and so preserving it. It may be history, it may be only legend, a
|
|
tradition. It may have happened, it may not have happened: but it
|
|
could have happened. It may be that the wise and the learned
|
|
believed it in the old days; it may be that only the unlearned and the
|
|
simple loved it and credited it.
|
|
|
|
Hugh Latimer, Bishop of Worcester, to Lord Cromwell, on the
|
|
birth of the Prince of Wales (afterward Edward VI).
|
|
|
|
[From the National Manuscripts preserved by the British
|
|
Government]
|
|
|
|
Ryght honorable, Salutem in Christo Jesu, and Syr here ys no lesse
|
|
joynge and rejossynge in thes partees for the byrth of our prynce,
|
|
hoom we hungurde for so longe, then ther was (I trow), inter vicinos
|
|
att the byrth of S. I. Baptyste, as thys berer, Master Erance, can
|
|
telle you. Gode gyffe us alle grace, to yelde dew thankes to our Lorde
|
|
Gode, Gode of Inglonde, for verely He hathe shoyd Hym selff Gode of
|
|
Inglond, or rather an Inglyssh Gode, yf we consydyr and pondyr welle
|
|
alle Hys procedynges with us from tyme to tyme. He hath overcumme alle
|
|
our yllness with Hys excedynge goodnesse, so that we ar now moor
|
|
then compelled to serve Hym, seke Hys glory, promott Hys wurde, yf the
|
|
Devylle of alle Devylles be natt in us. We have now the stoppe of
|
|
vayne trustes ande the stey of vayne expectations; lett us alle pray
|
|
for hys preservation. And I for my partt wylle wyssh that hys Grace
|
|
allways have, and evyn now from the begynynge, Governares,
|
|
Instructores and offyceres of ryght jugmente, ne optimum ingenium
|
|
non optima educatione depravetur.
|
|
Butt whatt a grett fowlle am I! So, whatt devotione shoyth many
|
|
tymys butt lytelle dyscretione! Ande thus the Gode of Inglonde be ever
|
|
with you in alle your procedynges.
|
|
|
|
The 19 of October.
|
|
|
|
Yours H. L. b. of Wurcestere, now att Hartlebury.
|
|
|
|
Yf you wolde excytt thys berere to be moore hartye ayen the
|
|
abuse of ymagry or mor forwarde to promotte the veryte, ytt myght
|
|
doo goode. Natt that ytt came of me butt of your selffe, &c.
|
|
|
|
The quality of mercy...
|
|
is twice bless'd;
|
|
It blesseth him that gives, and him that takes
|
|
'Tis mightiest in the mightiest: it becomes
|
|
The throned monarch better than his crown.
|
|
|
|
MERCHANT OF VENICE
|
|
CHAPTER I
|
|
The Birth of the Prince and the Pauper
|
|
|
|
IN the ancient city of London, on a certain autumn day in the
|
|
second quarter of the sixteenth century, a boy was born to a poor
|
|
family of the name of Canty, who did not want him. On the same day
|
|
another English child was born to a rich family of the name of
|
|
Tudor, who did want him. All England wanted him too. England had so
|
|
longed for him, and hoped for him, and prayed God for him, that, now
|
|
that he was really come, the people went nearly mad for joy. Mere
|
|
acquaintances hugged and kissed each other and cried. Everybody took a
|
|
holiday, and high and low, rich and poor, feasted and danced and sang,
|
|
and got very mellow; and they kept this up for days and nights
|
|
together. By day, London was a sight to see, with gay banners waving
|
|
from every balcony and housetop, and splendid pageants marching along.
|
|
By night, it was again a sight to see, with its great bonfires at
|
|
every corner, and its troops of revelers making merry around them.
|
|
There was no talk in all England but of the new baby, Edward Tudor,
|
|
Prince of Wales, who lay lapped in silks and satins, unconscious of
|
|
all this fuss, and not knowing that great lords and ladies were
|
|
tending him and watching over him- and not caring, either. But there
|
|
was no talk about the other baby, Tom Canty, lapped in his poor
|
|
rags, except among the family of paupers whom he had just come to
|
|
trouble with his presence.
|
|
CHAPTER II
|
|
Tom's Early Life
|
|
|
|
LET us skip a number of years.
|
|
London was fifteen hundred years old, and was a great town- for
|
|
that day. It had a hundred thousand inhabitants- some think double
|
|
as many. The streets were very narrow, and crooked, and dirty,
|
|
especially in the part where Tom Canty lived, which was not far from
|
|
London Bridge. The houses were of wood, with the second story
|
|
projecting over the first, and the third sticking its elbows out
|
|
beyond the second. The higher the houses grew, the broader they
|
|
grew. They were skeletons of strong crisscross beams, with solid
|
|
material between, coated with plaster. The beams were painted red or
|
|
blue or black, according to the owner's taste, and this gave the
|
|
houses a very picturesque look. The windows were small, glazed with
|
|
little diamond-shaped panes, and they opened outward, on hinges,
|
|
like doors.
|
|
The house which Tom's father lived in was up a foul little
|
|
pocket called Offal Court, out of Pudding Lane. It was small, decayed,
|
|
and rickety, but it was packed full of wretchedly poor families.
|
|
Canty's tribe occupied a room on the third floor. The mother and
|
|
father had a sort of bedstead in the corner; but Tom, his grandmother,
|
|
and his two sisters, Bet and Nan, were not restricted- they had all
|
|
the floor to themselves, and might sleep where they chose. There
|
|
were the remains of a blanket or two, and some bundles of ancient
|
|
and dirty straw, but these could not rightly be called beds, for
|
|
they were not organized; they were kicked into a general pile
|
|
mornings, and selections made from the mass at night, for service.
|
|
Bet and Nan were fifteen years old- twins. They were
|
|
good-hearted girls, unclean, clothed in rags, and profoundly ignorant.
|
|
Their mother was like them. But the father and the grandmother were
|
|
a couple of fiends. They got drunk whenever they could; then they
|
|
fought each other or anybody else who came in the way; they cursed and
|
|
swore always, drunk or sober; John Canty was a thief, and his mother a
|
|
beggar. They made beggars of the children, but failed to make
|
|
thieves of them. Among, but not of, the dreadful rabble that inhabited
|
|
the house, was a good old priest whom the king had turned out of house
|
|
and home with a pension of a few farthings, and he used to get the
|
|
children aside and teach them right ways secretly. Father Andrew
|
|
also taught Tom a little Latin, and how to read and write; and would
|
|
have done the same for the girls, but they were afraid of the jeers of
|
|
their friends, who could not have endured such a queer
|
|
accomplishment in them.
|
|
All Offal Court was just such another hive as Canty's house.
|
|
Drunkenness, riot, and brawling were the order there, every night
|
|
and nearly all night long. Broken heads were as common as hunger in
|
|
that place. Yet little Tom was not unhappy. He had a hard time of
|
|
it, but did not know it. It was the sort of time that all the Offal
|
|
Court boys had, therefore he supposed it was the correct and
|
|
comfortable thing. When he came home empty-handed at night, he knew
|
|
his father would curse him and thrash him first, and that when he
|
|
was done the awful grandmother would do it all over again and
|
|
improve on it; and that away in the night his starving mother would
|
|
slip to him stealthily with any miserable scrap of crust she had
|
|
been able to save for him by going hungry herself, notwithstanding she
|
|
was often caught in that sort of treason and soundly beaten for it
|
|
by her husband.
|
|
No, Tom's life went along well enough, especially in summer. He
|
|
only begged just enough to save himself, for the laws against
|
|
mendicancy were stringent, and the penalties heavy; so he put in a
|
|
good deal of his time listening to good Father Andrew's charming old
|
|
tales and legends about giants and fairies, dwarfs and genii, and
|
|
enchanted castles, and gorgeous kings and princes. His head grew to be
|
|
full of these wonderful things, and many a night as he lay in the dark
|
|
on his scant and offensive straw, tired, hungry, and smarting from a
|
|
thrashing, he unleashed his imagination and soon forgot his aches
|
|
and pains in delicious picturings to himself of the charmed life of
|
|
a petted prince in a regal palace. One desire came in time to haunt
|
|
him day and night; it was to see a real prince, with his own eyes.
|
|
He spoke of it once to some of his Offal Court comrades; but they
|
|
jeered him and scoffed him so unmercifully that he was glad to keep
|
|
his dream to himself after that.
|
|
He often read the priest's old books and got him to explain and
|
|
enlarge upon them. His dreamings and readings worked certain changes
|
|
in him by and by. His dream-people were so fine that he grew to lament
|
|
his shabby clothing and his dirt, and to wish to be clean and better
|
|
clad. He went on playing in the mud just the same, and enjoying it,
|
|
too; but instead of splashing around in the Thames solely for the
|
|
fun of it, he began to find an added value in it because of the
|
|
washings and cleansings it afforded.
|
|
Tom could always find something going on around the Maypole in
|
|
Cheapside, and at the fairs; and now and then he and the rest of
|
|
London had a chance to see a military parade when some famous
|
|
unfortunate was carried prisoner to the Tower, by land or boat. One
|
|
summer's day he saw poor Anne Askew and three men burned at the
|
|
stake in Smithfield, and heard an ex-bishop preach a sermon to them
|
|
which did not interest him. Yes, Tom's life was varied and pleasant
|
|
enough, on the whole.
|
|
By and by Tom's reading and dreaming about princely life wrought
|
|
such a strong effect upon him that he began to act the prince,
|
|
unconsciously. His speech and manners became curiously ceremonious and
|
|
courtly, to the vast admiration and amusement of his intimates. But
|
|
Tom's influence among these young people began to grow now, day by
|
|
day; and in time he came to be looked up to by them with a sort of
|
|
wondering awe, as a superior being. He seemed to know so much! and
|
|
he could do such marvellous things! and withal, he was so deep and
|
|
wise! Tom's remarks and Tom's performances were reported by the boys
|
|
to their elders; and these, also, presently began to discuss Tom
|
|
Canty, and to regard him as a most gifted and extraordinary
|
|
creature. Full-grown people brought their perplexities to Tom for
|
|
solution, and were often astonished at the wit and wisdom of his
|
|
decisions. In fact, he was become a hero to all who knew him except
|
|
his own family- these only saw nothing in him.
|
|
Privately, after a while, Tom organized a royal court! He was
|
|
the prince; his special comrades were guards, chamberlains, equerries,
|
|
lords and ladies in waiting, and the royal family. Daily the mock
|
|
prince was received with elaborate ceremonials borrowed by Tom from
|
|
his romantic readings; daily the great affairs of the mimic kingdom
|
|
were discussed in the royal council, and daily his mimic highness
|
|
issued decrees to his imaginary armies, navies, and viceroyalties.
|
|
After which he would go forth in his rags and beg a few farthings,
|
|
eat his poor crust, take his customary cuffs and abuse, and then
|
|
stretch himself upon his handful of foul straw, and resume his empty
|
|
grandeurs in his dreams.
|
|
And still his desire to look just once upon a real prince, in
|
|
the flesh, grew upon him, day by day, and week by week, until at
|
|
last it absorbed all other desires, and became the one passion of
|
|
his life.
|
|
One January day, on his usual begging tour, he tramped
|
|
despondently up and down the region round about Mincing Lane and
|
|
Little East Cheap, hour after hour, barefooted and cold, looking in at
|
|
cook-shop windows and longing for the dreadful pork-pies and other
|
|
deadly inventions displayed there- for to him these were dainties
|
|
fit for the angels; that is, judging by the smell, they were- for it
|
|
had never been his good luck to own and eat one. There was a cold
|
|
drizzle of rain; the atmosphere was murky; it was a melancholy day. At
|
|
night Tom reached home so wet and tired and hungry that it was not
|
|
possible for his father and grandmother to observe his forlorn
|
|
condition and not be moved- after their fashion; wherefore they gave
|
|
him a brisk cuffing at once and sent him to bed. For a long time his
|
|
pain and hunger, and the swearing and fighting going on in the
|
|
building, kept him awake; but at last his thoughts drifted away to
|
|
far, romantic lands, and he fell asleep in the company of jeweled
|
|
and gilded princelings who lived in vast palaces, and had servants
|
|
salaaming before them or flying to execute their orders. And then,
|
|
as usual, he dreamed that he was a princeling himself.
|
|
All night long the glories of his royal estate shone upon him;
|
|
he moved among great lords and ladies, in a blaze of light,
|
|
breathing perfumes, drinking in delicious music, and answering the
|
|
reverent obeisances of the glittering throng as it parted to make
|
|
way for him, with here a smile, and there a nod of his princely head.
|
|
And when he awoke in the morning and looked upon the
|
|
wretchedness about him, his dream had had its usual effect- it had
|
|
intensified the sordidness of his surroundings a thousandfold. Then
|
|
came bitterness, and heartbreak, and tears.
|
|
CHAPTER III
|
|
Tom's Meeting with the Prince
|
|
|
|
TOM got up hungry, and sauntered hungry away, but with his
|
|
thoughts busy with the shadowy splendors of his night's dreams. He
|
|
wandered here and there in the city, hardly noticing where he was
|
|
going, or what was happening around him. People jostled him and some
|
|
gave him rough speech; but it was all lost on the musing boy. By and
|
|
by he found himself at Temple Bar, the farthest from home he had
|
|
ever traveled in that direction. He stopped and considered a moment,
|
|
then fell into his imaginings again, and passed on outside the walls
|
|
of London. The Strand had ceased to be a country-road then, and
|
|
regarded itself as a street, but by a strained construction; for,
|
|
though there was a tolerably compact row of houses on one side of
|
|
it, there were only some scattering great buildings on the other,
|
|
these being palaces of rich nobles, with ample and beautiful grounds
|
|
stretching to the river- grounds that are now closely packed with grim
|
|
acres of brick and stone.
|
|
Tom discovered Charing Village presently, and rested himself at
|
|
the beautiful cross built there by a bereaved king of earlier days;
|
|
then idled down a quiet, lovely road, past the great cardinal's
|
|
stately palace, toward a far more mighty and majestic palace beyond-
|
|
Westminster. Tom stared in glad wonder at the vast pile of masonry,
|
|
the wide-spreading wings, the frowning bastions and turrets, the
|
|
huge stone gateways, with its gilded bars and its magnificent array of
|
|
colossal granite lions, and the other signs and symbols of English
|
|
royalty. Was the desire of his soul to be satisfied at last? Here,
|
|
indeed, was a king's palace. Might he not hope to see a prince now-
|
|
a prince of flesh and blood, if Heaven were willing?
|
|
At each side of the gilded gate stood a living statue, that is
|
|
to say, an erect and stately and motionless man-at-arms, clad from
|
|
head to heel in shining steel armor. At a respectful distance were
|
|
many country-folk, and people from the city, waiting for any chance
|
|
glimpse of royalty that might offer. Splendid carriages, with splendid
|
|
people in them and splendid servants outside, were arriving and
|
|
departing by several other noble gateways that pierced the royal
|
|
inclosure.
|
|
Poor little Tom, in his rags, approached, and was moving slowly
|
|
and timidly past the sentinels, with a beating heart and a rising
|
|
hope, when all at once he caught sight through the golden bars of a
|
|
spectacle that almost made him shout for joy. Within was a comely boy,
|
|
tanned and brown with sturdy outdoors sports and exercises, whose
|
|
clothing was all of lovely silks and satins, shining with jewels; at
|
|
his hip a little jeweled sword and dagger; dainty buskins on his feet,
|
|
with red heels; and on his head a jaunty crimson cap, with drooping
|
|
plumes fastened with a great sparkling gem. Several gorgeous gentlemen
|
|
stood near- his servants, without a doubt. Oh! he was a prince- a
|
|
prince, a living prince, a real prince- without the shadow of a
|
|
question; and the prayer of the pauper boy's heart was answered at
|
|
last.
|
|
Tom's breath came quick and short with excitement, and his eyes
|
|
grew big with wonder and delight. Everything gave way in his mind
|
|
instantly to one desire: that was to get close to the prince, and have
|
|
a good, devouring look at him. Before he knew what he was about, he
|
|
had his face against the gate-bars. The next instant one of the
|
|
soldiers snatched him rudely away, and sent him spinning among the
|
|
gaping crowd of country gawks and London idlers. The soldier said:
|
|
'Mind thy manners, thou young beggar!'
|
|
The crowd jeered and laughed; but the young prince sprang to the
|
|
gate with his face flushed, and his eyes flashing with indignation,
|
|
and cried out:
|
|
'How dar'st thou use a poor lad like that! How dar'st thou use the
|
|
king my father's meanest subject so! Open the gates, and let him in!'
|
|
You should have seen that fickle crowd snatch off their hats then.
|
|
You should have heard them cheer, and shout, 'Long live the Prince
|
|
of Wales!'
|
|
The soldiers presented arms with their halberds, opened the gates,
|
|
and presented again as the little Prince of Poverty passed in, in
|
|
his fluttering rags, to join hands with the Prince of Limitless
|
|
Plenty. Edward Tudor said:
|
|
'Thou lookest tired and hungry; thou'st been treated ill. Come
|
|
with me.'
|
|
Half a dozen attendants sprang forward to- I don't know what;
|
|
interfere, no doubt. But they were waved aside with a right royal
|
|
gesture, and they stopped stock still where they were like so many
|
|
statues. Edward took Tom to a rich apartment in the palace, which he
|
|
called his cabinet. By his command a repast was brought such as Tom
|
|
had never encountered before except in books. The prince, with
|
|
princely delicacy and breeding, sent away the servants, so that his
|
|
humble guest might not be embarrassed by their critical presence; then
|
|
he sat near by, and asked questions while Tom ate.
|
|
'What is thy name, lad?'
|
|
'Tom Canty, an it please thee, sir.'
|
|
''Tis an odd one. Where dost live?'
|
|
'In the city, please thee, sir. Offal Court, out of Pudding Lane.'
|
|
'Offal Court! Truly, 'tis another odd one. Hast parents?'
|
|
'Parents have I, sir, and a grandam likewise that is but
|
|
indifferently precious to me, God forgive me if it be offense to say
|
|
it- also twin sisters, Nan and Bet.'
|
|
'Then is thy grandam not overkind to thee, I take it.'
|
|
'Neither to any other is she, so please your worship. She hath a
|
|
wicked heart, and worketh evil all her days.'
|
|
'Doth she mistreat thee?'
|
|
'There be times that she stayeth her hand, being asleep or
|
|
overcome with drink; but when she hath her judgment clear again, she
|
|
maketh it up to me with goodly beatings.'
|
|
A fierce look came into the little prince's eyes, and he cried
|
|
out:
|
|
'What! Beatings?'
|
|
'O, indeed, yes, please you, sir.'
|
|
'Beatings!- and thou so frail and little. Hark ye: before the
|
|
night come, she shall hie her to the Tower. The king my father-'
|
|
'In sooth, you forget, sir, her low degree. The Tower is for the
|
|
great alone.'
|
|
'True, indeed. I had not thought of that. I will consider of her
|
|
punishment. Is thy father kind to thee?'
|
|
'Not more than Gammer Canty, sir.'
|
|
'Fathers be alike, mayhap. Mine hath not a doll's temper. He
|
|
smiteth with a heavy hand, yet spareth me; he spareth me not always
|
|
with his tongue, though, sooth to say. How doth thy mother use thee?'
|
|
'She is good, sir, and giveth me neither sorrow nor pain of any
|
|
sort. And Nan and Bet are like to her in this.'
|
|
'How old be these?'
|
|
'Fifteen, an it please you, sir.'
|
|
'The Lady Elizabeth, my sister, is fourteen and the Lady Jane
|
|
Grey, my cousin, is of mine own age, and comely and gracious withal;
|
|
but my sister the Lady Mary, with her gloomy mien and- Look you: do
|
|
thy sisters forbid their servants to smile, lest the sin destroy their
|
|
souls?'
|
|
'They? Oh, dost think, sir, that they have servants?'
|
|
The little prince contemplated the little pauper gravely a moment,
|
|
then said:
|
|
'And prithee, why not? Who helpeth them undress at night? who
|
|
attireth them when they rise?'
|
|
'None, sir. Wouldst have them take off their garment, and sleep
|
|
without- like the beasts?'
|
|
'Their garment! Have they but one?'
|
|
'Ah, good your worship, what would they do with more? Truly,
|
|
they have not two bodies each.'
|
|
'It is a quaint and marvelous thought! Thy pardon, I had not meant
|
|
to laugh. But thy good Nan and thy Bet shall have raiment and
|
|
lackeys enow, and that soon, too: my cofferer shall look to it. No,
|
|
thank me not; 'tis nothing. Thou speakest well; thou hast an easy
|
|
grace in it. Art learned?'
|
|
'I know not if I am or not, sir. The good priest that is called
|
|
Father Andrew taught me, of his kindness, from his books.'
|
|
'Know'st thou the Latin?'
|
|
'But scantily, sir, I doubt.'
|
|
'Learn it, lad: 'tis hard only at first. The Greek is harder;
|
|
but neither these nor any tongues else, I think, are hard to the
|
|
Lady Elizabeth and my cousin. Thou shouldst hear those damsels at
|
|
it! But tell me of thy Offal Court. Hast thou a pleasant life there?'
|
|
'In truth, yes, so please you, sir, save when one is hungry. There
|
|
be Punch-and-Judy shows, and monkeys- oh, such antic creatures! and so
|
|
bravely dressed!- and there be plays wherein they that play do shout
|
|
and fight till all are slain, and 'tis so fine to see, and costeth but
|
|
a farthing- albeit 'tis main hard to get the farthing, please your
|
|
worship.'
|
|
'Tell me more.'
|
|
'We lads of Offal Court do strive against each other with the
|
|
cudgel, like to the fashion of the 'prentices, sometimes.'
|
|
The prince's eyes flashed. Said he:
|
|
'Marry, that would I not mislike. Tell me more.'
|
|
'We strive in races, sir, to see who of us shall be fleetest.'
|
|
'That would I like also. Speak on.'
|
|
'In summer, sir, we wade and swim in the canals and in the
|
|
river, and each doth duck his neighbor, and spatter him with water,
|
|
and dive and shout and tumble and-'
|
|
''Twould be worth my father's kingdom but to enjoy it once!
|
|
Prithee go on.'
|
|
'We dance and sing about the Maypole in Cheapside; we play in
|
|
the sand, each covering his neighbor up; and times we make mud pastry-
|
|
oh, the lovely mud, it hath not its like for delightfulness in all the
|
|
world!- we do fairly wallow in the mud, sir, saving your worship's
|
|
presence.'
|
|
'Oh, prithee, say no more, 'tis glorious! If that I could but
|
|
clothe me in raiment like to thine, and strip my feet, and revel in
|
|
the mud once, just once, with none to rebuke me or forbid, meseemeth I
|
|
could forego the crown!'
|
|
'And if that I could clothe me once, sweet sir, as thou art
|
|
clad- just once-'
|
|
'Oho, wouldst like it? Then so shall it be. Doff thy rags, and don
|
|
these splendors, lad! It is a brief happiness, but will be not less
|
|
keen for that. We will have it while we may, and change again before
|
|
any come to molest.'
|
|
A few minutes later the little Prince of Wales was garlanded
|
|
with Tom's fluttering odds and ends, and the little Prince of
|
|
Pauperdom was tricked out in the gaudy plumage of royalty. The two
|
|
went and stood side by side before a great mirror, and lo, a
|
|
miracle: there did not seem to have been any change made! They
|
|
stared at each other, then at the glass, then at each other again.
|
|
At last the puzzled princeling said:
|
|
'What dost thou make of this?'
|
|
'Ah, good your worship, require me not to answer. It is not meet
|
|
that one of my degree should utter the thing.'
|
|
'Then will I utter it. Thou hast the same hair, the same eyes, the
|
|
same voice and manner, the same form and stature, the same face and
|
|
countenance, that I bear. Fared we forth naked, there is none could
|
|
say which was you, and which the Prince of Wales. And, now that I am
|
|
clothed as thou wert clothed, it seemeth I should be able the more
|
|
nearly to feel as thou didst when the brute soldier- Hark ye, is not
|
|
this a bruise upon your hand?'
|
|
'Yes; but it is a slight thing, and your worship knoweth that
|
|
the poor man-at-arms-'
|
|
'Peace! It was a shameful thing and a cruel!' cried the little
|
|
prince, stamping his bare foot. 'If the king- Stir not a step till I
|
|
come again! It is a command!'
|
|
In a moment he had snatched up and put away an article of national
|
|
importance that lay upon a table, and was out at the door and flying
|
|
through the palace grounds in his bannered rags, with a hot face and
|
|
glowing eyes. As soon as he reached the great gate, he seized the
|
|
bars, and tried to shake them, shouting: 'Open! Unbar the gates!'
|
|
The soldier that had maltreated Tom obeyed promptly; and as the
|
|
prince burst through the portal, half smothered with royal wrath,
|
|
the soldier fetched him a sounding box on the ear that sent him
|
|
whirling to the roadway, and said:
|
|
'Take that, thou beggar's spawn for what thou got'st me from his
|
|
Highness!'
|
|
The crowd roared with laughter. The prince picked himself out of
|
|
the mud, and made fiercely at the sentry, shouting:
|
|
'I am the Prince of Wales, my person is sacred; and thou shalt
|
|
hang for laying thy hand upon me!'
|
|
The soldier brought his halberd to a present-arms and said
|
|
mockingly:
|
|
'I salute your gracious Highness.' Then angrily, 'Be off, thou
|
|
crazy rubbish!'
|
|
Here the jeering crowd closed around the poor little prince, and
|
|
hustled him far down the road, hooting him, and shouting. 'Way for his
|
|
royal Highness! way for the Prince of Wales!'
|
|
CHAPTER IV
|
|
The Prince's Troubles Begin
|
|
|
|
AFTER hours of persistent pursuit and persecution, the little
|
|
prince was at last deserted by the rabble and left to himself. As long
|
|
as he had been able to rage against the mob, and threaten it
|
|
royally, and royally utter commands that were good stuff to laugh
|
|
at, he was very entertaining; but when weariness finally forced him to
|
|
be silent, he was no longer of use to his tormentors, and they
|
|
sought amusement elsewhere. He looked about him now, but could not
|
|
recognize the locality. He was within the city of London- that was all
|
|
he knew. He moved on, aimlessly, and in a little while the houses
|
|
thinned, and the passers-by were infrequent. He bathed his bleeding
|
|
feet in the brook which flowed then where Farringdon Street now is;
|
|
rested a few moments, then passed on, and presently came upon a
|
|
great space with only a few scattered houses in it, and a prodigious
|
|
church. He recognized this church. Scaffoldings were about,
|
|
everywhere, and swarms of workmen; for it was undergoing elaborate
|
|
repairs. The prince took heart at once- he felt that his troubles were
|
|
at an end now. He said to himself, 'It is the ancient Grey Friars'
|
|
church, which the king my father hath taken from the monks and given
|
|
for a home forever for poor and forsaken children, and new-named it
|
|
Christ's church. Right gladly will they serve the son of him who
|
|
hath done so generously by them- and the more that that son is himself
|
|
as poor and as forlorn as any that be sheltered here this day, or ever
|
|
shall be.'
|
|
He was soon in the midst of a crowd of boys who were running,
|
|
jumping, playing at ball and leap-frog and otherwise disporting
|
|
themselves, and right noisily, too. They were all dressed alike, and
|
|
in the fashion which in that day prevailed among serving-men and
|
|
'prentices'*- that is to say, each had on the crown of his head a flat
|
|
black cap about the size of a saucer, which was not useful as a
|
|
covering, it being of such scanty dimensions, neither was it
|
|
ornamental; from beneath it the hair fell, unparted, to the middle
|
|
of the forehead, and was cropped straight around; a clerical band at
|
|
the neck; a blue gown that fitted closely and hung as low as the knees
|
|
or lower; full sleeves; a broad red belt; bright yellow stockings,
|
|
gartered above the knees; low shoes with large metal buckles. It was a
|
|
sufficiently ugly costume.
|
|
The boys stopped their play and flocked about the prince, who said
|
|
with native dignity:
|
|
'Good lads, say to your master that Edward Prince of Wales
|
|
desireth speech with him.'
|
|
A great shout went up at this, and one rude fellow said:
|
|
'Marry, art thou his grace's messenger, beggar?'
|
|
The prince's face flushed with anger, and his ready hand flew to
|
|
his hip, but there was nothing there. There was a storm of laughter,
|
|
and one boy said:
|
|
'Didst mark that? He fancied he had a sword- belike he is the
|
|
prince himself.'
|
|
This sally brought more laughter. Poor Edward drew himself up
|
|
proudly and said:
|
|
'I am the prince; and it ill beseemeth you that feed upon the king
|
|
my father's bounty to use me so.'
|
|
This was vastly enjoyed, as the laughter testified. The youth
|
|
who had first spoken shouted to his comrades:
|
|
'Ho, swine, slaves, pensioners of his grace's princely father,
|
|
where be your manners? Down on your marrow bones, all of ye, and do
|
|
reverence to his kingly port and royal rags!'
|
|
With boisterous mirth they dropped upon their knees in a body
|
|
and did mock homage to their prey. The prince spurned the nearest
|
|
boy with his foot, and said fiercely:
|
|
'Take thou that, till the morrow come and I build thee a gibbet!'
|
|
Ah, but this was not a joke- this was going beyond fun. The
|
|
laughter ceased on the instant and fury took its place. A dozen
|
|
shouted:
|
|
'Hale him forth! To the horse-pond, to the horse-pond! Where be
|
|
the dogs? Ho, there, Lion! ho, Fangs!'
|
|
Then followed such a thing as England had never seen before- the
|
|
sacred person of the heir to the throne rudely buffeted by plebeian
|
|
hands, and set upon and torn by dogs.
|
|
As night drew to a close that day, the prince found himself far
|
|
down in the close-built portion of the city. His body was bruised, his
|
|
hands were bleeding, and his rags were all besmirched with mud. He
|
|
wandered on and on, and grew more and more bewildered, and so tired
|
|
and faint he could hardly drag one foot after the other. He had ceased
|
|
to ask questions of any one, since they brought him only insult
|
|
instead of information. He kept muttering to himself, 'Offal Court-
|
|
that is the name; if I can but find it before my strength is wholly
|
|
spent and I drop, then am I saved- for his people will take me to
|
|
the palace and prove that I am none of theirs, but the true prince,
|
|
and I shall have mine own again.' And now and then his mind reverted
|
|
to his treatment by those rude Christ's Hospital boys, and he said,
|
|
'When I am king, they shall not have bread and shelter only, but
|
|
also teachings out of books; for a full belly is little worth where
|
|
the mind is starved, and the heart. I will keep this diligently in
|
|
my remembrance, that this day's lesson be not lost upon me, and my
|
|
people suffer thereby; for learning softeneth the heart and breedeth
|
|
gentleness and charity.'*(2)
|
|
The lights began to twinkle, it came on to rain, the wind rose,
|
|
and a raw and gusty night set in. The houseless prince, the homeless
|
|
heir to the throne of England, still moved on, drifting deeper into
|
|
the maze of squalid alleys where the swarming hives of poverty and
|
|
misery were massed together.
|
|
Suddenly a great drunken ruffian collared him and said:
|
|
'Out to this time of night again, and hast not brought a
|
|
farthing home, I warrant me! If it be so, an I do not break all the
|
|
bones in thy lean body, then am I not John Canty, but some other.'
|
|
The prince twisted himself loose, unconsciously brushed his
|
|
profaned shoulder, and eagerly said:
|
|
'Oh, art his father, truly? Sweet heaven grant it be so- then wilt
|
|
thou fetch him away and restore me!'
|
|
'His father? I know not what thou mean'st; I but know I am thy
|
|
father, as thou shalt soon have cause to-'
|
|
'Oh, jest not, palter not, delay not!- I am worn, I am wounded,
|
|
I can bear no more. Take me to the king my father, and he will make
|
|
thee rich beyond thy wildest dreams. Believe me, man, believe me! I
|
|
speak no lie, but only the truth!- put forth thy hand and save me! I
|
|
am indeed the Prince of Wales!'
|
|
The man stared down, stupefied, upon the lad, then shook his
|
|
head and muttered:
|
|
'Gone stark mad as any Tom o' Bedlam!'- then collared him once
|
|
more, and said with a coarse laugh and an oath, 'But mad or no mad,
|
|
I and thy Gammer Canty will soon find where the soft places in thy
|
|
bones lie, or I'm no true man!'
|
|
With this he dragged the frantic and struggling prince away, and
|
|
disappeared up a front court followed by a delighted and noisy swarm
|
|
of human vermin.
|
|
CHAPTER V
|
|
Tom as a Patrician
|
|
|
|
TOM CANTY, left alone in the prince's cabinet, made good use of
|
|
his opportunity. He turned himself this way and that before the
|
|
great mirror, admiring his finery; then walked away, imitating the
|
|
prince's high-bred carriage, and still observing results in the glass.
|
|
Next he drew the beautiful sword, and bowed, kissing the blade, and
|
|
laying it across his breast, as he had seen a noble knight do, by
|
|
way of salute to the lieutenant of the Tower, five or six weeks
|
|
before, when delivering the great lords of Norfolk and Surrey into his
|
|
hands for captivity. Tom played with the jeweled dagger that hung upon
|
|
his thigh; he examined the costly and exquisite ornaments of the room;
|
|
he tried each of the sumptuous chairs, and thought how proud he
|
|
would be if the Offal Court herd could only peep in and see him in his
|
|
grandeur. He wondered if they would believe the marvelous tale he
|
|
should tell when he got home, or if they would shake their heads,
|
|
and say his overtaxed imagination had at last upset his reason.
|
|
At the end of half an hour it suddenly occurred to him that the
|
|
prince was gone a long time; then right away he began to feel
|
|
lonely; very soon he fell to listening and longing, and ceased to
|
|
toy with the pretty things about him; he grew uneasy, then restless,
|
|
then distressed. Suppose some one should come, and catch him in the
|
|
prince's clothes, and the prince not there to explain. Might they
|
|
not hang him at once, and inquire into his case afterward? He had
|
|
heard that the great were prompt about small matters. His fears rose
|
|
higher and higher; and trembling he softly opened the door to the
|
|
ante-chamber, resolved to fly and seek the prince, and through him,
|
|
protection and release. Six gorgeous gentlemen-servants and two
|
|
young pages of high degree, clothed like butterflies, sprung to
|
|
their feet, and bowed low before him. He stepped quickly back, and
|
|
shut the door. He said:
|
|
'Oh, they mock at me! They will go and tell. Oh! why came I here
|
|
to cast away my life?'
|
|
He walked up and down the floor, filled with nameless fears,
|
|
listening, starting at every trifling sound. Presently the door
|
|
swung open, and a silken page said:
|
|
'The Lady Jane Grey.'
|
|
The door closed, and a sweet young girl, richly clad, bounded
|
|
toward him.
|
|
But she stopped suddenly, and said in a distressed voice:
|
|
'Oh, what aileth thee, my lord?'
|
|
Tom's breath was nearly failing him; but he made shift to
|
|
stammer out:
|
|
'Ah, be merciful, thou! In sooth I am no lord, but only poor Tom
|
|
Canty of Offal Court in the city. Prithee let me see the prince, and
|
|
he will of his grace restore to me my rags, and let me hence unhurt.
|
|
Oh, be thou merciful, and save me!'
|
|
By this time the boy was on his knees, and supplicating with his
|
|
eyes and uplifted hands as well as with his tongue. The young girl
|
|
seemed horror-stricken. She cried out:
|
|
'Oh, my lord, on thy knees? and to me!'
|
|
Then she fled away in fright; and Tom, smitten with despair,
|
|
sank down, murmuring:
|
|
'There is no help, there is no hope. Now will they come and take
|
|
me.'
|
|
Whilst he lay there benumbed with terror, dreadful tidings were
|
|
speeding through the palace. The whisper, for it was whispered always,
|
|
flew from menial to menial, from lord to lady, down all the long
|
|
corridors, from story to story, from saloon to saloon, 'The prince
|
|
hath gone mad, the prince hath gone mad!' Soon every saloon, every
|
|
marble hall, had its groups of glittering lords and ladies, and
|
|
other groups of dazzling lesser folk, talking earnestly together in
|
|
whispers, and every face had in it dismay. Presently a splendid
|
|
official came marching by these groups, making solemn proclamation:
|
|
|
|
'IN THE NAME OF THE KING
|
|
|
|
Let none list to this false and foolish matter, upon pain of death,
|
|
nor discuss the same, nor carry it abroad. In the name of the king!'
|
|
|
|
The whisperings ceased as suddenly as if the whisperers had been
|
|
stricken dumb.
|
|
Soon there was a general buzz along the corridors, of 'The prince!
|
|
See, the prince comes!'
|
|
Poor Tom came slowly walking past the low-bowing groups, trying to
|
|
bow in return, and meekly gazing upon his strange surroundings with
|
|
bewildered and pathetic eyes. Great nobles walked upon each side of
|
|
him, making him lean upon them, and so steady his steps. Behind him
|
|
followed the court physicians and some servants.
|
|
Presently Tom found himself in a noble apartment of the palace,
|
|
and heard the door close behind him. Around him stood those who had
|
|
come with him.
|
|
Before him, at a little distance, reclined a very large and very
|
|
fat man, with a wide, pulpy face, and a stern expression. His large
|
|
head was very gray; and his whiskers, which he wore only around his
|
|
face, like a frame, were gray also. His clothing was of rich stuff,
|
|
but old, and slightly frayed in places. One of his swollen legs had
|
|
a pillow under it, and was wrapped in bandages. There was silence now;
|
|
and there was no head there but was bent in reverence, except this
|
|
man's. This stern-countenanced invalid was the dread Henry VIII. He
|
|
said- and his face grew gentle as he began to speak:
|
|
'How now, my lord Edward, my prince? Hast been minded to cozen me,
|
|
the good king thy father, who loveth thee, and kindly useth thee, with
|
|
a sorry jest?'
|
|
Poor Tom was listening, as well as his dazed faculties would let
|
|
him, to the beginning of this speech; but when the words 'me the
|
|
good king' fell upon his ear, his face blanched, and he dropped as
|
|
instantly upon his knees as if a shot had brought him there. Lifting
|
|
up his hands, he exclaimed:
|
|
'Thou the king? Then am I undone indeed!'
|
|
This speech seemed to stun the king. His eyes wandered from face
|
|
to face aimlessly, then rested, bewildered, upon the boy before him.
|
|
Then he said in a tone of deep disappointment:
|
|
'Alack, I had believed the rumor disproportioned to the truth; but
|
|
I fear me 'tis not so.' He breathed a heavy sigh, and said in a gentle
|
|
voice, 'Come to thy father, child; thou art not well.'
|
|
Tom was assisted to his feet, and approached the Majesty of
|
|
England, humble and trembling. The king took the frightened face
|
|
between his hands, and gazed earnestly and lovingly into it awhile, as
|
|
if seeking some grateful sign of returning reason there, then
|
|
pressed the curly head against his breast, and patted it tenderly.
|
|
Presently he said:
|
|
'Dost thou know thy father, child? Break not mine old heart; say
|
|
thou know'st me. Thou dost know me, dost thou not?'
|
|
'Yea; thou art my dread lord the king, whom God preserve.'
|
|
'True, true- that is well- be comforted, tremble not so; there
|
|
is none here who would hurt thee; there is none here but loves thee.
|
|
Thou art better now; thy ill dream passeth- is't not so? And thou
|
|
knowest thyself now also- is't not so? Thou wilt not miscall thyself
|
|
again, as they say thou didst a little while agone?'
|
|
'I pray thee of thy grace believe me, I did but speak the truth,
|
|
most dread lord; for I am the meanest among thy subjects, being a
|
|
pauper born, and 'tis by a sore mischance and accident I am here,
|
|
albeit I was therein nothing blameful. I am but young to die, and thou
|
|
canst save me with one little word. Oh, speak it, sir!'
|
|
'Die? Talk not so, sweet prince- peace, peace, to thy troubled
|
|
heart- thou shalt not die!'
|
|
Tom dropped upon his knees with a glad cry:
|
|
'God requite thy mercy, oh my king, and save thee long to bless
|
|
thy land!' Then springing up, he turned a joyful face toward the two
|
|
lords in waiting, and exclaimed, 'Thou heard'st it! I am not to die:
|
|
the king hath said it!' There was no movement, save that all bowed
|
|
with grave respect; but no one spoke. He hesitated, a little confused,
|
|
then turned timidly toward the king, saying, 'I may go now?'
|
|
'Go? Surely, if thou desirest. But why not tarry yet a little?
|
|
Whither wouldst go?'
|
|
Tom dropped his eyes, and answered humbly:
|
|
'Peradventure I mistook; but I did think me free, and so was I
|
|
moved to seek again the kennel where I was born and bred to misery,
|
|
yet which harboreth my mother and my sisters, and so is home to me;
|
|
whereas these pomps and splendors whereunto I am not used- oh,
|
|
please you, sir, to let me go!'
|
|
The king was silent and thoughtful awhile, and his face betrayed a
|
|
growing distress and uneasiness. Presently he said, with something
|
|
of hope in his voice:
|
|
'Perchance he is but mad upon this one strain and hath his wits
|
|
unmarred as toucheth other matter. God send it may be so! We will make
|
|
trial.'
|
|
Then he asked Tom a question in Latin, and Tom answered him lamely
|
|
in the same tongue. The King was delighted, and showed it. The lords
|
|
and doctors manifested their gratification also.
|
|
The king said:
|
|
''Twas not according to his schooling and ability, but sheweth
|
|
that his mind is but diseased, not stricken fatally. How say you,
|
|
sir?'
|
|
The physician addressed bowed low, and replied:
|
|
'It jumpeth with mine own conviction, sire, that thou hast divined
|
|
aright.'
|
|
The king looked pleased with this encouragement, coming as it
|
|
did from so excellent authority, and continued with good heart:
|
|
'Now mark ye all: we will try him further.'
|
|
He put a question to Tom in French. Tom stood silent a moment,
|
|
embarrassed by having so many eyes centered upon him, then said
|
|
diffidently:
|
|
'I have no knowledge of this tongue, so please your majesty.'
|
|
The king fell back upon his couch. The attendants flew to his
|
|
assistance; but he put them aside, and said:
|
|
'Trouble me not- it is nothing but a scurvy faintness. Raise me!
|
|
there, 'tis sufficient. Come hither, child; there, rest thy poor
|
|
troubled head upon thy father's heart, and be at peace. Thou'lt soon
|
|
be well; 'tis but a passing fantasy. Fear thou not; thou'lt soon be
|
|
well.' Then he turned toward the company; his gentle manner changed,
|
|
and baleful lightnings began to play from his eyes. He said:
|
|
'List ye all! This my son is mad; but it is not permanent.
|
|
Overstudy hath done this, and somewhat too much of confinement. Away
|
|
with his books and teachers! see ye to it. Pleasure him with sports,
|
|
beguile him in wholesome ways, so that his health come again.' He
|
|
raised himself higher still and went on with energy. 'He is mad; but
|
|
he is my son, and England's heir; and, mad or sane, still shall he
|
|
reign! And hear ye further, and proclaim it; whoso speaketh of this
|
|
his distemper worketh against the peace and order of these realms, and
|
|
shall to the gallows!... Give me to drink- I burn: This sorrow sappeth
|
|
my strength.... There, take away the cup.... Support me. There, that
|
|
is well. Mad, is he? Were he a thousand times mad, yet is he Prince of
|
|
Wales, and I the king will confirm it. This very morrow shall he be
|
|
installed in his princely dignity in due and ancient form. Take
|
|
instant order for it, my Lord Hertford.'
|
|
One of the nobles knelt at the royal couch, and said:
|
|
'The king's majesty knoweth that the Hereditary Great Marshal of
|
|
England lieth attainted in the Tower. It were not meet that one
|
|
attainted-'
|
|
'Peace! Insult not mine ears with his hated name. Is this man to
|
|
live forever? Am I to be balked of my will? Is the prince to tarry
|
|
uninstalled, because, forsooth, the realm lacketh an earl marshal free
|
|
of treasonable taint to invest him with his honors? No, by the
|
|
splendor of God! Warn my parliament to bring me Norfolk's doom
|
|
before the sun rise again, else shall they answer for it
|
|
grievously!*(3)
|
|
Lord Hertford said:
|
|
'The king's will is law'; and, rising, returned to his former
|
|
place.
|
|
Gradually the wrath faded out of the old king's face, and he said:
|
|
'Kiss me, my prince. There... what fearest thou? Am I not thy
|
|
loving father?'
|
|
'Thou art good to me that am unworthy, O mighty and gracious lord;
|
|
that in truth I know. But- but- it grieveth me to think of him that is
|
|
to die, and-'
|
|
'Ah, 'tis like thee, 'tis like thee! I know thy heart is still the
|
|
same, even though thy mind hath suffered hurt, for thou wert ever of a
|
|
gentle spirit. But this duke standeth between thee and thine honors: I
|
|
will have another in his stead that shall bring no taint to his
|
|
great office. Comfort thee, my prince: trouble not thy poor head
|
|
with this matter.'
|
|
'But is it not I that speed him hence, my liege? How long might he
|
|
not live, but for me?'
|
|
'Take no thought of him, my prince: he is not worthy. Kiss me once
|
|
again, and go to thy trifles and amusements; for my malady distresseth
|
|
me. I am aweary, and would rest. Go with thine uncle Hertford and
|
|
thy people, and come again when my body is refreshed.'
|
|
Tom, heavy-hearted, was conducted from the presence, for this last
|
|
sentence was a death-blow to the hope he had cherished that now he
|
|
would be set free. Once more he heard the buzz of low voices
|
|
exclaiming, 'The prince, the prince comes!'
|
|
His spirits sank lower and lower as he moved between the
|
|
glittering files of bowing courtiers; for he recognized that he was
|
|
indeed a captive now, and might remain forever shut up in this
|
|
gilded cage, a forlorn and friendless prince, except God in his
|
|
mercy take pity on him and set him free.
|
|
And, turn where he would, he seemed to see floating in the air the
|
|
severed head and the remembered face of the great Duke of Norfolk, the
|
|
eyes fixed on him reproachfully.
|
|
His old dreams had been so pleasant; but this reality was so
|
|
dreary!
|
|
CHAPTER VI
|
|
Tom Recieves Instructions
|
|
|
|
TOM was conducted to the principal apartment of a noble suite, and
|
|
made to sit down- a thing which he was loath to do, since there were
|
|
elderly men and men of high degree about him. He begged them to be
|
|
seated, also, but they only bowed their thanks or murmured them, and
|
|
remained standing. He would have insisted, but his 'uncle,' the Earl
|
|
of Hertford, whispered in his ear:
|
|
'Prithee, insist not, my lord; it is not meet that they sit in thy
|
|
presence.'
|
|
The Lord St. John was announced, and, after making obeisance to
|
|
Tom, he said:
|
|
'I come upon the king's errand, concerning a matter which
|
|
requireth privacy. Will it please your royal highness to dismiss all
|
|
that attend you here, save my lord the Earl of Hertford?'
|
|
Observing that Tom did not seem to know how to proceed, Hertford
|
|
whispered him to make a sign with his hand and not trouble himself
|
|
to speak unless he chose. When the waiting gentlemen had retired, Lord
|
|
St. John said:
|
|
'His majesty commandeth, that for due and weighty reasons of
|
|
state, the prince's grace shall hide his infirmity in all ways that be
|
|
within his power, till it be passed and he be as he was before. To
|
|
wit, that he shall deny to none that he is the true prince, and heir
|
|
to England's greatness; that he shall uphold his princely dignity, and
|
|
shall receive, without word or sign of protest, that reverence and
|
|
observance which unto it do appertain of right and ancient usage; that
|
|
he shall cease to speak to any of that lowly birth and life his malady
|
|
hath conjured out of the unwholesome imaginings of o'erwrought
|
|
fancy; that he shall strive with diligence to bring unto his memory
|
|
again those faces which he was wont to know- and where he faileth he
|
|
shall hold his peace, neither betraying by semblance of surprise, or
|
|
other sign, that he hath forgot; that upon occasions of state,
|
|
whensoever any matter shall perplex him as to the thing he should do
|
|
or the utterance he should make, he shall show naught of unrest to the
|
|
curious that look on, but take advice in that matter of the Lord
|
|
Hertford, or my humble self, which are commanded of the king to be
|
|
upon this service and close at call, till this commandment be
|
|
dissolved. Thus saith the king's majesty, who sendeth greeting to your
|
|
royal highness and prayeth that God will of His mercy quickly heal you
|
|
and have you now and ever in His holy keeping.'
|
|
The Lord St. John made reverence and stood aside. Tom replied,
|
|
resignedly:
|
|
'The king hath said it. None may palter with the king's command,
|
|
or fit it to his ease, where it doth chafe, with deft evasions. The
|
|
king shall be obeyed.'
|
|
Lord Hertford said:
|
|
'Touching the king's majesty's ordainment concerning books and
|
|
such like serious matters, it may peradventure please your highness to
|
|
ease your time with lightsome entertainment, lest you go wearied to
|
|
the banquet and suffer harm thereby.'
|
|
Tom's face showed inquiring surprise; and a blush followed when he
|
|
saw Lord St. John's eyes bent sorrowfully upon him. His lordship said:
|
|
'Thy memory still wrongeth thee, and thou hast shown surprise- but
|
|
suffer it not to trouble thee, for 'tis a matter that will not bide,
|
|
but depart with thy mending malady. My Lord of Hertford speaketh of
|
|
the city's banquet which the king's majesty did promise two months
|
|
flown, your highness should attend. Thou recallest it now?'
|
|
'It grieves me to confess it had indeed escaped me,' said Tom,
|
|
in a hesitating voice; and blushed again.
|
|
At that moment the Lady Elizabeth and the Lady Jane Grey were
|
|
announced. The two lords exchanged significant glances, and Hertford
|
|
stepped quickly toward the door. As the young girls passed him, he
|
|
said in a low voice:
|
|
'I pray ye, ladies, seem not to observe his humors, nor show
|
|
surprise when his memory doth lapse- it will grieve you to note how it
|
|
doth stick at every trifle.'
|
|
Meanwhile Lord St. John was saying in Tom's ear:
|
|
'Please you, sir, keep diligently in mind his majesty's desire.
|
|
Remember all thou canst- seem to remember all else. Let them not
|
|
perceive that thou art much changed from thy wont, for thou knowest
|
|
how tenderly thy old playfellows bear thee in their hearts and how
|
|
'twould grieve them. Art willing, sir, that I remain?- and thine
|
|
uncle?'
|
|
Tom signified assent with a gesture and a murmured word, for he
|
|
was already learning, and in his simple heart was resolved to acquit
|
|
himself as best he might according to the king's command.
|
|
In spite of every precaution, the conversation among the young
|
|
people became a little embarrassing at times. More than once, in
|
|
truth, Tom was near to breaking down and confessing himself unequal to
|
|
his tremendous part; but the tact of the Princess Elizabeth saved him,
|
|
or a word from one or the other of the vigilant lords, thrown in
|
|
apparently by chance, had the same happy effect. Once the little
|
|
Lady Jane turned to Tom and dismayed him with this question:
|
|
'Hast paid thy duty to the queen's majesty today, my lord?'
|
|
Tom hesitated, looked distressed, and was about to stammer out
|
|
something at hazard when Lord St. John took the word and answered
|
|
for him with the easy grace of a courtier accustomed to encounter
|
|
delicate difficulties and to be ready for them:
|
|
'He hath indeed, madam, and she did greatly hearten him, as
|
|
touching his majesty's condition; is it not so, your highness?'
|
|
Tom mumbled something that stood for assent, but felt that he
|
|
was getting upon dangerous ground. Somewhat later it was mentioned
|
|
that Tom was to study no more at present, whereupon her little
|
|
ladyship exclaimed:
|
|
''Tis a pity, 'tis such a pity! Thou were proceeding bravely.
|
|
But bide thy time in patience; it will not be for long. Thou'lt yet be
|
|
graced with learning like thy father, and make thy tongue master of as
|
|
many languages as his, good my prince.'
|
|
'My father!' cried Tom, off his guard for the moment. 'I trow he
|
|
cannot speak his own so that any but the swine that wallow in the
|
|
sties may tell his meaning; and as for learning of any sort soever-'
|
|
He looked up and encountered a solemn warning in my Lord St.
|
|
John's eyes.
|
|
He stopped, blushed, then continued low and sadly: 'Ah, my
|
|
malady persecuteth me again, and my mind wandereth. I meant the king's
|
|
grace no irreverence.'
|
|
'We know it, sir,' said the Princess Elizabeth, taking her
|
|
'brother's' hand between her two palms, respectfully but
|
|
caressingly; 'trouble not thyself as to that. The fault is none of
|
|
thine, but thy distemper's.'
|
|
'Thou'rt a gentle comforter, sweet lady,' said Tom, gratefully,
|
|
'and my heart moveth me to thank thee for't, an I may be so bold.'
|
|
Once the giddy little Lady Jane fired a simple Greek phrase at
|
|
Tom. The Princess Elizabeth's quick eye saw by the serene blankness of
|
|
the target's front that the shaft was overshot; so she tranquilly
|
|
delivered a return volley of sounding Greek on Tom's behalf, and
|
|
then straightway changed the talk to other matters.
|
|
Time wore on pleasantly, and likewise smoothly, on the whole.
|
|
Snags and sand-bars grew less and less frequent, and Tom grew more and
|
|
more at his ease, seeing that all were so lovingly bent upon helping
|
|
him and overlooking his mistakes. When it came out that the little
|
|
ladies were to accompany him to the Lord Mayor's banquet in the
|
|
evening, his heart gave a bound of relief and delight, for he felt
|
|
that he should not be friendless now, among that multitude of
|
|
strangers, whereas, an hour earlier, the idea of their going with
|
|
him would have been an insupportable terror to him.
|
|
Tom's guardian angels, the two lords, had had less comfort in
|
|
the interview than the other parties to it. They felt much as if
|
|
they were piloting a great ship through a dangerous channel; they were
|
|
on the alert constantly, and found their office no child's play.
|
|
Wherefore, at last, when the ladies' visit was drawing to a close
|
|
and the Lord Guilford Dudley was announced, they not only felt that
|
|
their charge had been sufficiently taxed for the present, but also
|
|
that they themselves were not in the best condition to take their ship
|
|
back and make their anxious voyage all over again. So they
|
|
respectfully advised Tom to excuse himself, which he was very glad
|
|
to do, although a slight shade of disappointment might have been
|
|
observed upon my Lady Jane's face when she heard the splendid
|
|
stripling denied admittance.
|
|
There was a pause now, a sort of waiting silence which Tom could
|
|
not understand. He glanced at Lord Hertford, who gave him a sign-
|
|
but he failed to understand that also. The ready Elizabeth came to the
|
|
rescue with her usual easy grace. She made reverence and said:
|
|
'Have we leave of the prince's grace my brother to go?'
|
|
Tom said:
|
|
'Indeed, your ladyships can have whatsoever of me they will, for
|
|
the asking; yet would I rather give them any other thing that in my
|
|
poor power lieth, than leave to take the light and blessing of their
|
|
presence hence. Give ye good den, and God be with ye!' Then he
|
|
smiled inwardly at the thought, ''tis not for naught I have dwelt
|
|
but among princes in my reading, and taught my tongue some slight
|
|
trick of their broidered and gracious speech withal!'
|
|
When the illustrious maidens were gone, Tom turned wearily to
|
|
his keepers and said:
|
|
'May it please your lordships to grant me leave to go into some
|
|
corner and rest me!'
|
|
Lord Hertford said:
|
|
'So please your highness, it is for you to command, it is for us
|
|
to obey. That thou shouldst rest, is indeed a needful thing, since
|
|
thou must journey to the city presently.'
|
|
He touched a bell and a page appeared, who was ordered to desire
|
|
the presence of Sir William Herbert. This gentleman came
|
|
straightway, and conducted Tom to an inner apartment. Tom's first
|
|
movement there was to reach for a cup of water; but a
|
|
silk-and-velvet servitor seized it, dropped upon one knee, and offered
|
|
it to him on a golden salver.
|
|
Next, the tired captive sat down and was going to take off his
|
|
buskins, timidly asking leave with his eye, but another
|
|
silk-and-velvet discomforter went down upon his knees and took the
|
|
office from him. He made two or three further efforts to help himself,
|
|
but being promptly forestalled each time, he finally gave up, with a
|
|
sigh of resignation and a murmured 'Beshrew me, but I marvel they do
|
|
not require to breathe for me also!' Slippered, and wrapped in a
|
|
sumptuous robe, he laid himself down at last to rest, but not to
|
|
sleep, for his head was too full of thoughts and the room too full
|
|
of people. He could not dismiss the former, so they stayed; he did not
|
|
know enough to dismiss the latter, so they stayed also, to his vast
|
|
regret- and theirs.
|
|
Tom's departure had left his two noble guardians alone. They mused
|
|
awhile, with much headshaking and walking the floor, then Lord St.
|
|
John said:
|
|
'Plainly, what dost thou think?'
|
|
'Plainly, then, this. The king is near his end, my nephew is
|
|
mad, mad will mount the throne, and mad remain. God protect England,
|
|
since she will need it!'
|
|
'Verily it promiseth so, indeed. But... have you no misgivings
|
|
as to... as to...'
|
|
The speaker hesitated, and finally stopped. He evidently felt that
|
|
he was upon delicate ground. Lord Hertford stopped before him,
|
|
looked into his face with a clear, frank eye, and said:
|
|
'Speak on- there is none to hear but me. Misgivings as to what?'
|
|
'I am loath to word the thing that is in my mind, and thou so near
|
|
to him in blood, my lord. But craving pardon if I do offend, seemeth
|
|
it not strange that madness could so change his port and manner!-
|
|
not but that his port and speech are princely still, but that they
|
|
differ in one unweighty trifle or another, from what his custom was
|
|
aforetime. Seemeth it not strange that madness should filch from his
|
|
memory his father's very lineaments; the customs and observances
|
|
that are his due from such as be about him; and, leaving him his
|
|
Latin, strip him of his Greek and French? My lord, be not offended,
|
|
but ease my mind of its disquiet and receive my grateful thanks. It
|
|
haunteth me, his saying he was not the prince, and so-'
|
|
'Peace, my lord, thou utterest treason! Hast forgot the king's
|
|
command? Remember I am party to thy crime, if I but listen.'
|
|
St. John paled, and hastened to say:
|
|
'I was in fault, I do confess it. Betray me not, grant me this
|
|
grace out of thy courtesy, and I will neither think nor speak of
|
|
this thing more. Deal not hardly with me, sir, else am I ruined.'
|
|
'I am content, my lord. So thou offend not again, here or in the
|
|
ears of others, it shall be as though thou hadst not spoken. But
|
|
thou needst not have misgivings. He is my sister's son; are not his
|
|
voice, his face, his form, familiar to me from his cradle? Madness can
|
|
do all the odd conflicting things thou seest in him, and more. Dost
|
|
not recall how that the old Baron Marley, being mad, forgot the
|
|
favor of his own countenance that he had known for sixty years, and
|
|
held it was another's; nay, even claimed he was the son of Mary
|
|
Magdalene, and that his head was made of Spanish glass; and sooth to
|
|
say, he suffered none to touch it, lest by mischance some heedless
|
|
hand might shiver it. Give thy misgivings easement, good my lord. This
|
|
is the very prince, I know him well- and soon will be thy king; it may
|
|
advantage thee to bear this in mind and more dwell upon it than the
|
|
other.'
|
|
After some further talk, in which the Lord St. John covered up his
|
|
mistake as well as he could by repeated protests that his faith was
|
|
thoroughly grounded now, and could not be assailed by doubts again,
|
|
the Lord Hertford relieved his fellow-keeper, and sat down to keep
|
|
watch and ward alone. He was soon deep in meditation. And evidently
|
|
the longer he thought, the more he was bothered. By and by he began to
|
|
pace the floor and mutter.
|
|
'Tush, he must be the prince! Will any he in all the land maintain
|
|
there can be two, not of one blood and birth, so marvelously
|
|
twinned? And even were it so, 'twere yet a stranger miracle that
|
|
chance should cast the one into the other's place. Nay, 'tis folly,
|
|
folly, folly!'
|
|
Presently he said:
|
|
'Now were he impostor and called himself prince, look you that
|
|
would be natural; that would be reasonable. But lived ever an impostor
|
|
yet, who, being called prince by the king, prince by the court, prince
|
|
by all, denied his dignity and pleaded against his exaltation? No!
|
|
By the soul of St. Swithin, no! This is the true prince, gone mad!'
|
|
CHAPTER VII
|
|
Tom's First Royal Dinner
|
|
|
|
SOMEWHAT after one in the afternoon, Tom resignedly underwent
|
|
the ordeal of being dressed for dinner. He found himself as finely
|
|
clothed as before, but everything different, everything changed,
|
|
from his ruff to his stockings. He was presently conducted with much
|
|
state to a spacious and ornate apartment, where a table was already
|
|
set for one. Its furniture was all of massy gold, and beautified
|
|
with designs which well-nigh made it priceless, since they were the
|
|
work of Benvenuto. The room was half filled with noble servitors. A
|
|
chaplain said grace, and Tom was about to fall to, for hunger had long
|
|
been constitutional with him, but was interrupted by my lord the
|
|
Earl of Berkeley, who fastened a napkin about his neck; for the
|
|
great post of Diaperers to the Prince of Wales was hereditary in
|
|
this nobleman's family. Tom's cupbearer was present, and forestalled
|
|
all his attempts to help himself to wine. The Taster to his Highness
|
|
the Prince of Wales was there also, prepared to taste any suspicious
|
|
dish upon requirement, and run the risk of being poisoned. He was only
|
|
an ornamental appendage at this time, and was seldom called to
|
|
exercise his function; but there had been times, not many
|
|
generations past, when the office of taster had its perils, and was
|
|
not a grandeur to be desired. Why they did not use a dog or a
|
|
plumber seems strange; but all the ways of royalty are strange. My
|
|
Lord d'Arcy, First Groom of the Chamber, was there, to do goodness
|
|
knows what; but there he was- let that suffice. The Lord Chief
|
|
Butler was there, and stood behind Tom's chair overseeing the
|
|
solemnities, under command of the Lord Great Steward and the Lord Head
|
|
Cook, who stood near. Tom had three hundred and eighty-four servants
|
|
besides these; but they were not all in that room, of course, nor
|
|
the quarter of them; neither was Tom aware yet that they existed.
|
|
All those that were present had been well drilled within the
|
|
hour to remember that the prince was temporarily out of his head,
|
|
and to be careful to show no surprise at his vagaries. These
|
|
'vagaries' were soon on exhibition before them; but they only moved
|
|
their compassion and their sorrow, not their mirth. It was a heavy
|
|
affliction to them to see the beloved prince so stricken.
|
|
Poor Tom ate with his fingers mainly; but no one smiled at it,
|
|
or even seemed to observe it. He inspected his napkin curiously and
|
|
with deep interest, for it was of a very dainty and beautiful
|
|
fabric, then said with simplicity:
|
|
'Prithee, take it away, lest in mine unheedfulness it be soiled.'
|
|
The Hereditary Diaperer took it away with reverent manner, and
|
|
without word or protest of any sort.
|
|
Tom examined the turnips and the lettuce with interest, and
|
|
asked what they were, and if they were to be eaten; for it was only
|
|
recently that men had begun to raise these things in England in
|
|
place of importing them as luxuries from Holland.*(4) His question was
|
|
answered with grave respect, and no surprise manifested. When he had
|
|
finished his dessert, he filled his pockets with nuts; but nobody
|
|
appeared to be aware of it, or disturbed by it. But the next moment he
|
|
was himself disturbed by it, and showed discomposure; for this was the
|
|
only service he had been permitted to do with his own hands during the
|
|
meal, and he did not doubt that he had done a most improper and
|
|
unprincely thing. At that moment the muscles of his nose began to
|
|
twitch, and the end of that organ to lift and wrinkle. This continued,
|
|
and Tom began to evince a growing distress. He looked appealingly,
|
|
first at one and then another of the lords about him, and tears came
|
|
into his eyes. They sprang forward with dismay in their faces, and
|
|
begged to know his trouble. Tom said with genuine anguish:
|
|
'I crave your indulgence; my nose itcheth cruelly. What is the
|
|
custom and usage in this emergence? Prithee speed, for 'tis but a
|
|
little time that I can bear it.'
|
|
None smiled; but all were sore perplexed, and looked one to the
|
|
other in deep tribulation for counsel. But, behold, here was a dead
|
|
wall, and nothing in English history to tell how to get over it. The
|
|
Master of Ceremonies was not present; there was no one who felt safe
|
|
to venture upon this uncharted sea, or risk the attempt to solve
|
|
this solemn problem. Alas! there was no Hereditary Scratcher. Meantime
|
|
the tears had overflowed their banks, and begun to trickle down
|
|
Tom's cheeks. His twitching nose was pleading more urgently than
|
|
ever for relief. At last nature broke down the barriers of
|
|
etiquette; Tom lifted up an inward prayer for pardon if he was doing
|
|
wrong, and brought relief to the burdened hearts of his court by
|
|
scratching his nose himself.
|
|
His meal being ended, a lord came and held before him a broad,
|
|
shallow, golden dish with fragrant rose-water in it, to cleanse his
|
|
mouth and fingers with; and my lord the Hereditary Diaperer stood by
|
|
with a napkin for his use. Tom gazed at the dish a puzzled moment or
|
|
two, then raised it to his lips, and gravely took a draught. Then he
|
|
returned it to the waiting lord, and said:
|
|
'Nay, it likes me not, my lord; it hath a pretty flavor, but it
|
|
wanteth strength.'
|
|
This new eccentricity of the prince's ruined mind made all the
|
|
hearts about him ache; but the sad sight moved none to merriment.
|
|
Tom's next unconscious blunder was to get up and leave the table
|
|
just when the chaplain had taken his stand behind his chair and with
|
|
uplifted hands and closed uplifted eyes, was in the act of beginning
|
|
the blessing. Still nobody seemed to perceive that the prince had done
|
|
a thing unusual.
|
|
By his own request, our small friend was now conducted to his
|
|
private cabinet, and left there alone to his own devices. Hanging upon
|
|
hooks in the oaken wainscoting were the several pieces of a suit of
|
|
shining steel armor, covered all over with beautiful designs
|
|
exquisitely inlaid in gold. This martial panoply belonged to the
|
|
true prince- a recent present from Madam Parr, the queen. Tom put on
|
|
the greaves, the gauntlets, the plumed helmet, and such other pieces
|
|
as he could don without assistance, and for a while was minded to call
|
|
for help and complete the matter, but bethought him of the nuts he had
|
|
brought away from dinner, and the joy it would be to eat them with
|
|
no crowd to eye him, and no Grand Hereditaries to pester him with
|
|
undesired services; so he restored the pretty things to their
|
|
several places, and soon was cracking nuts, and feeling almost
|
|
naturally happy for the first time since God for his sins had made him
|
|
a prince. When the nuts were all gone, he stumbled upon some
|
|
inviting books in a closet, among them one about the etiquette of
|
|
the English court. This was a prize. He lay down upon a sumptuous
|
|
divan, and proceeded to instruct himself with honest zeal. Let us
|
|
leave him there for the present.
|
|
CHAPTER VIII
|
|
The Question of the Seal
|
|
|
|
ABOUT five o'clock Henry VIII awoke out of an unrefreshing nap,
|
|
and muttered to himself, 'Troublous dreams, troublous dreams! Mine end
|
|
is now at hand; so say these warnings, and my failing pulses do
|
|
confirm it.' Presently a wicked light flamed up in his eye, and he
|
|
muttered, 'Yet will not I die till he go before.'
|
|
His attendants perceiving that he was awake, one of them asked his
|
|
pleasure concerning the Lord Chancellor, who was waiting without.
|
|
'Admit him, admit him!' exclaimed the king eagerly.
|
|
The Lord Chancellor entered, and knelt by the king's couch,
|
|
saying:
|
|
'I have given order, and, according to the king's command, the
|
|
peers of the realm, in their robes, do now stand at the bar of the
|
|
House, where, having confirmed the Duke of Norfolk's doom, they humbly
|
|
wait his majesty's further pleasure in the matter.'
|
|
The king's face lit up with a fierce joy. Said he:
|
|
'Lift me up! In mine own person will I go before my Parliament,
|
|
and with mine own hand will I seal the warrant that rids me of-'
|
|
His voice failed; an ashen pallor swept the flush from his cheeks;
|
|
and the attendants eased him back upon his pillows, and hurriedly
|
|
assisted him with restoratives. Presently he said sorrowfully:
|
|
'Alack, how have I longed for this sweet hour! and lo, too late it
|
|
cometh, and I am robbed of this so coveted chance. But speed ye, speed
|
|
ye! let others do this happy office sith 'tis denied to me. I put my
|
|
great seal in commission: choose thou the lords that shall compose it,
|
|
and get ye to your work. Speed ye, man! Before the sun shall rise
|
|
and set again, bring me his head that I may see it.'
|
|
'According to the king's command, so shall it be. Will't please
|
|
your majesty to order that the Seal be now restored to me, so that I
|
|
may forth upon the business?'
|
|
'The Seal! Who keepeth the Seal but thou?'
|
|
'Please your majesty, you did take it from me two days since,
|
|
saying it should no more do its office till your own royal hand should
|
|
use it upon the Duke of Norfolk's warrant.'
|
|
'Why, so in sooth I did; I do remember it.... What did I with
|
|
it!... I am very feeble.... So oft these days doth my memory play
|
|
the traitor with me.... 'Tis strange, strange-'
|
|
The king dropped into inarticulate mumblings, shaking his gray
|
|
head weakly from time to time, and gropingly trying to recollect
|
|
what he had done with the Seal. At last my Lord Hertford ventured to
|
|
kneel and offer information-
|
|
'Sire, if that I may be so bold, here be several that do
|
|
remember with me how that you gave the Great Seal into the hands of
|
|
his Highness the Prince of Wales to keep against the day that-'
|
|
'True, most true!' interrupted the king. 'Fetch it! Go: time
|
|
flieth!'
|
|
Lord Hertford flew to Tom, but returned to the king before very
|
|
long, troubled and empty-handed. He delivered himself to this effect:
|
|
'It grieveth me, my lord the king, to bear so heavy and
|
|
unwelcome tidings; but it is the will of God that the prince's
|
|
affliction abideth still, and he cannot recall to mind that he
|
|
received the Seal. So came I quickly to report, thinking it were waste
|
|
of precious time, and little worth withal, that any should attempt
|
|
to search the long array of chambers and saloons that belong unto
|
|
his royal high-'
|
|
A groan from the king interrupted my lord at this point. After a
|
|
while his majesty said, with a deep sadness in his tone:
|
|
'Trouble him no more, poor child. The hand of God lieth heavy upon
|
|
him, and my heart goeth out in loving compassion for him, and sorrow
|
|
that I may not bear his burden on mine own old trouble-weighted
|
|
shoulders, and so bring him peace.'
|
|
He closed his eyes, fell to mumbling, and presently was silent.
|
|
After a time he opened his eyes again, and gazed vacantly around until
|
|
his glance rested upon the kneeling Lord Chancellor. Instantly his
|
|
face flushed with wrath:
|
|
'What, thou here yet! By the glory of God, an thou gettest not
|
|
about that traitor's business, thy miter shall have holiday the morrow
|
|
for lack of a head to grace withal!'
|
|
The trembling Chancellor answered:
|
|
'Good your majesty, I cry you mercy! I but waited for the Seal.'
|
|
'Man, hast lost thy wits? The small Seal which aforetime I was
|
|
wont to take with me abroad lieth in my treasury. And, since the Great
|
|
Seal hath flown away, shall not it suffice? Hast lost thy wits?
|
|
Begone! And hark ye- come no more till thou do bring his head.'
|
|
The poor Chancellor was not long in removing himself from this
|
|
dangerous vicinity; nor did the commission waste time in giving the
|
|
royal assent to the work of the slavish Parliament, and appointing the
|
|
morrow for the beheading of the premier peer of England, the
|
|
luckless Duke of Norfolk.*(5)
|
|
CHAPTER IX
|
|
The River Pageant
|
|
|
|
AT nine in the evening the whole vast river-front of the palace
|
|
was blazing with light. The river itself, as far as the eye could
|
|
reach cityward, was so thickly covered with watermen's boats and
|
|
with pleasure barges, all fringed with colored lanterns, and gently
|
|
agitated by the waves, that it resembled a glowing and limitless
|
|
garden of flowers stirred to soft motion by summer winds. The grand
|
|
terrace of stone steps leading down to the water, spacious enough to
|
|
mass the army of a German principality upon, was a picture to see,
|
|
with its ranks of royal halberdiers in polished armor, and its
|
|
troops of brilliantly costumed servitors flitting up and down, and
|
|
to and fro, in the hurry of preparation.
|
|
Presently a command was given, and immediately all living
|
|
creatures vanished from the steps. Now the air was heavy with the hush
|
|
of suspense and expectancy. As far as one's vision could carry, he
|
|
might see the myriads of people in the boats rise up, and shade
|
|
their eyes from the glare of lanterns and torches, and gaze toward the
|
|
palace.
|
|
A file of forty or fifty state barges drew up to the steps. They
|
|
were richly gilt, and their lofty prows and sterns were elaborately
|
|
carved. Some of them were decorated with banners and streamers; some
|
|
with cloth-of-gold and arras embroidered with coats of arms; others
|
|
with silken flags that had numberless little silver bells fastened
|
|
to them, which shook out tiny showers of joyous music whenever the
|
|
breezes fluttered them; others of yet higher pretensions, since they
|
|
belonged to nobles in the prince's immediate service, had their
|
|
sides picturesquely fenced with shields gorgeously emblazoned with
|
|
armorial bearings. Each state barge was towed by a tender. Besides the
|
|
rowers, these tenders carried each a number of men-at-arms in glossy
|
|
helmet and breastplate, and a company of musicians.
|
|
The advance-guard of the expected procession now appeared in the
|
|
great gateway, a troop of halberdiers. 'They were dressed in striped
|
|
hose of black and tawny, velvet caps graced at the sides with silver
|
|
roses, and doublets of murrey and blue cloth, embroidered on the front
|
|
and back with the three feathers, the prince's blazon, woven in
|
|
gold. Their halberd staves were covered with crimson velvet,
|
|
fastened with gilt nails, and ornamented with gold tassels. Filing off
|
|
on the right and left, they formed two long lines, extending from
|
|
the gateway of the palace to the water's edge. A thick, rayed cloth or
|
|
carpet was then unfolded, and laid down between them by attendants
|
|
in the gold-and-crimson liveries of the prince. This done, a
|
|
flourish of trumpets resounded from within. A lively prelude arose
|
|
from the musicians on the water; and two ushers with white wands
|
|
marched with a slow and stately pace from the portal. They were
|
|
followed by an officer bearing the civic mace, after whom came another
|
|
carrying the city's sword; then several sergeants of the city guard,
|
|
in their full accoutrements, and with badges on their sleeves; then
|
|
the Garter king-at-arms, in his tabard; then several knights of the
|
|
Bath, each with a white lace on his sleeve; then their esquires;
|
|
then the judges, in their robes of scarlet and coifs; then the Lord
|
|
High Chancellor of England, in a robe of scarlet, open before, and
|
|
purfled with minever; then a deputation of aldermen, in their
|
|
scarlet cloaks; and then the heads of the different civic companies,
|
|
in their robes of state. Now came twelve French gentlemen, in splendid
|
|
habiliments, consisting of pourpoints of white damask barred with
|
|
gold, short mantles of crimson velvet lined with violet taffeta, and
|
|
carnation-colored hauts-de-chausses, and took their way down the
|
|
steps. They were of the suite of the French ambassador, and were
|
|
followed by twelve cavaliers of the suite of the Spanish ambassador,
|
|
clothed in black velvet, unrelieved by any ornament. Following these
|
|
came several great English nobles with their attendants.'
|
|
There was a flourish of trumpets within; and the prince's uncle,
|
|
the future great Duke of Somerset, emerged from the gateway, arrayed
|
|
in a 'doublet of black cloth-of-gold, and a cloak of crimson satin
|
|
flowered with gold, and ribanded with nets of silver.' He turned,
|
|
doffed his plumed cap, bent his body in a low reverence, and began
|
|
to step backward, bowing at each step. A prolonged trumpet-blast
|
|
followed, and a proclamation, 'Way for the high and mighty, the Lord
|
|
Edward, Prince of Wales!' High aloft on the palace walls a long line
|
|
of red tongues of flame leaped forth with a thunder-crash; the
|
|
massed world on the river burst into a mighty roar of welcome; and Tom
|
|
Canty, the cause and hero of it all, stepped into view, and slightly
|
|
bowed his princely head.
|
|
He was 'magnificently habited in a doublet of white satin, with
|
|
a front-piece of purple cloth-of-tissue, powdered with diamonds, and
|
|
edged with ermine. Over this he wore a mantle of white
|
|
cloth-of-gold, pounced with the triple-feather crest, lined with
|
|
blue satin, set with pearls and precious stones, and fastened with a
|
|
clasp of brilliants. About his neck hung the order of the Garter,
|
|
and several princely foreign orders'; and wherever light fell upon him
|
|
jewels responded with a blinding flash. O, Tom Canty, born in a hovel,
|
|
bred in the gutters of London, familiar with rags and dirt and misery,
|
|
what a spectacle is this!
|
|
CHAPTER X
|
|
The Prince in the Toils
|
|
|
|
WE left John Canty dragging the rightful prince into Offal
|
|
Court, with a noisy and delighted mob at his heels. There was but
|
|
one person in it who offered a pleading word for the captive, and he
|
|
was not heeded; he was hardly even heard, so great was the turmoil.
|
|
The prince continued to struggle for freedom, and to rage against
|
|
the treatment he was suffering, until John Canty lost what little
|
|
patience was left in him, and raised his oaken cudgel in a sudden fury
|
|
over the prince's head. The single pleader for the lad sprang to
|
|
stop the man's arm, and the blow descended upon his own wrist. Canty
|
|
roared out:
|
|
'Thou'lt meddle, wilt thou? Then have thy reward.'
|
|
His cudgel crashed down upon the meddler's head; there was a
|
|
groan, a dim form sank to the ground among the feet of the crowd,
|
|
and the next moment it lay there in the dark alone. The mob pressed
|
|
on, their enjoyment nothing disturbed by this episode.
|
|
Presently the prince found himself in John Canty's abode, with the
|
|
door closed against the outsiders. By the vague light of a tallow
|
|
candle which was thrust into a bottle, he made out the main features
|
|
of the loathsome den, and also of the occupants of it. Two frowsy
|
|
girls and a middle-aged woman cowered against the wall in one
|
|
corner, with the aspect of animals habituated to harsh usage, and
|
|
expecting and dreading it now. From another corner stole a withered
|
|
hag with streaming gray hair and malignant eyes. John Canty said to
|
|
this one:
|
|
'Tarry! There's fine mummeries here. Mar them not till thou'st
|
|
enjoyed them; then let thy hand be heavy as thou wilt. Stand forth,
|
|
lad. Now say thy foolery again, an thou'st not forget it. Name thy
|
|
name. Who art thou?'
|
|
The insulted blood mounted to the little prince's cheek once more,
|
|
and he lifted a steady and indignant gaze to the man's face, and said:
|
|
''Tis but ill-breeding in such as thou to command me to speak. I
|
|
tell thee now, as I told thee before, I am Edward, Prince of Wales,
|
|
and none other.'
|
|
The stunning surprise of this reply nailed the hag's feet to the
|
|
floor where she stood, and almost took her breath. She stared at the
|
|
prince in stupid amazement, which so amused her ruffianly son that
|
|
he burst into a roar of laughter. But the effect upon Tom Canty's
|
|
mother and sisters was different. Their dread of bodily injury gave
|
|
way at once to distress of a different sort. They ran forward with woe
|
|
and dismay in their faces, exclaiming:
|
|
'Oh, poor Tom, poor lad!'
|
|
The mother fell on her knees before the prince, put her hands upon
|
|
his shoulders, and gazed yearningly into his face through her rising
|
|
tears. Then she said:
|
|
'Oh, my poor boy! thy foolish reading hath wrought its woeful work
|
|
at last, and ta'en thy wit away. Ah! why didst thou cleave to it
|
|
when I so warned thee 'gainst it? Thou'st broke thy mother's heart.'
|
|
The prince looked into her face, and said gently:
|
|
'Thy son is well and hath not lost his wits, good dame. Comfort
|
|
thee; let me to the palace where he is, and straightway will the
|
|
king my father restore him to thee.'
|
|
'The king thy father! Oh, my child! unsay these words that be
|
|
freighted with death for thee, and ruin for all that be near to
|
|
thee. Shake off this gruesome dream. Call back thy poor wandering
|
|
memory. Look upon me. Am not I thy mother that bore thee, and loveth
|
|
thee?'
|
|
The prince shook his head, and reluctantly said:
|
|
'God knoweth I am loath to grieve thy heart; but truly have I
|
|
never looked upon thy face before.'
|
|
The woman sank back to a sitting posture on the floor, and,
|
|
covering her eyes with her hands, gave way to heartbroken sobs and
|
|
wailings.
|
|
'Let the show go on!' shouted Canty. 'What, Nan! what, Bet!
|
|
Mannerless wenches! will ye stand in the prince's presence? Upon
|
|
your knees, ye pauper scum, and do him reverence!'
|
|
He followed this with another horse-laugh. The girls began to
|
|
plead timidly for their brother; and Nan said:
|
|
'An thou wilt but let him to bed, father, rest and sleep will heal
|
|
his madness; prithee, do.'
|
|
'Do, father,' said Bet; 'he is more worn than is his wont.
|
|
To-morrow will he be himself again, and will beg with diligence, and
|
|
come not empty home again.'
|
|
This remark sobered the father's joviality, and brought his mind
|
|
to business. He turned angrily upon the prince, and said:
|
|
'The morrow must we pay two pennies to him that owns this hole;
|
|
two pennies mark ye- all this money for a half-year's rent, else out
|
|
of this we go. Show what thou'st gathered with thy lazy begging.'
|
|
The prince said:
|
|
'Offend me not with thy sordid matters. I tell thee again I am the
|
|
king's son.'
|
|
A sounding blow upon the prince's shoulder from Canty's broad palm
|
|
sent him staggering into good-wife Canty's arms, who clasped him to
|
|
her breast, and sheltered him from a pelting rain of cuffs and slaps
|
|
by interposing her own person.
|
|
The frightened girls retreated to their corner; but the
|
|
grandmother stepped eagerly forward to assist her son. The prince
|
|
sprang away from Mrs. Canty, exclaiming:
|
|
'Thou shalt not suffer for me, madam. Let these swine do their
|
|
will upon me alone.'
|
|
This speech infuriated the swine to such a degree that they set
|
|
about their work without waste of time. Between them they belabored
|
|
the boy right soundly, and then gave the girls and their mother a
|
|
beating for showing sympathy for the victim.
|
|
'Now,' said Canty, 'to bed, all of ye. The entertainment has tired
|
|
me.'
|
|
The light was put out, and the family retired. As soon as the
|
|
snorings of the head of the house and his mother showed that they were
|
|
asleep, the young girls crept to where the prince lay, and covered him
|
|
tenderly from the cold with straw and rags; and their mother crept
|
|
to him also, and stroked his hair, and cried over him, whispering
|
|
broken words of comfort and compassion in his ear the while. She had
|
|
saved a morsel for him to eat also; but the boy's pains had swept away
|
|
all appetite- at least for black and tasteless crusts. He was
|
|
touched by her brave and costly defense of him, and by her
|
|
commiseration; and he thanked her in very noble and princely words,
|
|
and begged her to go to sleep and try to forget her sorrows. And he
|
|
added that the king his father would not let her loyal kindness and
|
|
devotion go unrewarded. This return to his 'madness' broke her heart
|
|
anew, and she strained him to her breast again and again and then went
|
|
back, drowned in tears, to her bed.
|
|
As she lay thinking and mourning, the suggestion began to creep
|
|
into her mind that there was an undefinable something about this boy
|
|
that was lacking in Tom Canty, mad or sane. She could not describe it,
|
|
she could not tell just what it was, and yet her sharp mother-instinct
|
|
seemed to detect it and perceive it. What if the boy were really not
|
|
her son, after all? Oh, absurd! She almost smiled at the idea, spite
|
|
of her griefs and troubles. No matter, she found that it was an idea
|
|
that would not 'down', but persisted in haunting her. It pursued
|
|
her, it harassed her, it clung to her, and refused to be put away or
|
|
ignored. At last she perceived that there was not going to be any
|
|
peace for her until she should devise a test that should prove, dearly
|
|
and without question, whether this lad was her son or not, and so
|
|
banish these wearing and worrying doubts. Ah, yes, this was plainly
|
|
the right way out of the difficulty; therefore, she set her wits to
|
|
work at once to contrive that test. But it was an easier thing to
|
|
propose than to accomplish. She turned over in her mind one
|
|
promising test after another, but was obliged to relinquish them
|
|
all- none of them were absolutely sure, absolutely perfect; and an
|
|
imperfect one could not satisfy her. Evidently she was racking her
|
|
head in vain- it seemed manifest that she must give the matter up.
|
|
While this depressing thought was passing through her mind, her ear
|
|
caught the regular breathing of the boy, and she knew he had fallen
|
|
asleep. And while she listened, the measured breathing was broken by a
|
|
soft, startled cry, such as one utters in a troubled dream. This
|
|
chance occurrence furnished her instantly with a plan worth all her
|
|
labored tests combined. She at once set herself feverishly, but
|
|
noiselessly, to work to relight her candle, muttering to herself, 'Had
|
|
I but seen him then, I should have known! Since that day, when he
|
|
was little, that the powder burst in his face, he hath never been
|
|
startled of a sudden out of his dreams or out of his thinkings, but he
|
|
hath cast his hand before his eyes, even as he did that day, and not
|
|
as others would do it, with the palm inward, but always with the
|
|
palm turned outward- I have seen it a hundred times, and it hath never
|
|
varied nor ever failed. Yes, I shall soon know now!'
|
|
By this time she had crept to the slumbering boy's side, with
|
|
the candle shaded in her hand. She bent heedfully and warily over him,
|
|
scarcely breathing, in her suppressed excitement, and suddenly flashed
|
|
the light in his face and struck the floor by his ear with her
|
|
knuckles. The sleeper's eyes sprung wide open, and he cast a
|
|
startled stare about him- but he made no special movement with his
|
|
hands.
|
|
The poor woman was smitten almost helpless with surprise and
|
|
grief; but she contrived to hide her emotions, and to soothe the boy
|
|
to sleep again; then she crept apart and communed miserably with
|
|
herself upon the disastrous result of her experiment. She tried to
|
|
believe that her Tom's madness had banished this habitual gesture of
|
|
his; but she could not do it. 'No,' she said, 'his hands are not
|
|
mad, they could not unlearn so old a habit in so brief a time. Oh,
|
|
this is a heavy day for me!'
|
|
Still, hope was as stubborn now as doubt had been before; she
|
|
could not bring herself to accept the verdict of the test; she must
|
|
try the thing again- the failure must have been only an accident; so
|
|
she startled the boy out of his sleep a second and a third time, at
|
|
intervals- with the same result which had marked the first test-
|
|
then she dragged herself to bed, and fell sorrowfully asleep,
|
|
saying, 'But I cannot give him up- oh, no, I cannot- he must be my
|
|
boy!'
|
|
The poor mother's interruptions having ceased, and the prince's
|
|
pains having gradually lost their power to disturb him, utter
|
|
weariness at last sealed his eyes in a profound and restful sleep.
|
|
Hour after hour slipped away, and still he slept like the dead. Thus
|
|
four or five hours passed. Then his stupor began to lighten.
|
|
Presently, while half asleep and half awake, he murmured:
|
|
'Sir William!'
|
|
After a moment:
|
|
'Ho, Sir William Herbert! Hie thee hither, and list to the
|
|
strangest dream that ever.... Sir William! Dost hear? Man, I did think
|
|
me changed to a pauper, and... Ho there! Guards! Sir William! What! is
|
|
there no groom of the chamber in waiting? Alack it shall go hard
|
|
with-'
|
|
'What aileth thee?' asked a whisper near him. 'Who art thou
|
|
calling?'
|
|
'Sir William Herbert. Who art thou?'
|
|
'I? Who should I be, but thy sister Nan? Oh, Tom, I had forgot!
|
|
Tbou'rt mad yet- poor lad thou'rt mad yet, would I had never woke to
|
|
know it again! But, prithee, master thy tongue, lest we be all
|
|
beaten till we die!'
|
|
The startled prince sprang partly up, but a sharp reminder from
|
|
his stiffened bruises brought him to himself, and he sunk back among
|
|
his foul straw with a moan and the ejaculation:
|
|
'Alas, it was no dream, then!'
|
|
In a moment all the heavy sorrow and misery which sleep had
|
|
banished were upon him again, and he realized that he was no longer
|
|
a petted prince in a palace, with the adoring eyes of a nation upon
|
|
him, but a pauper, an outcast, clothed in rags, prisoner in a den
|
|
fit only for beasts, and consorting with beggars and thieves.
|
|
In the midst of his grief he began to be conscious of hilarious
|
|
noises and shoutings, apparently but a block or two away. The next
|
|
moment there were several sharp raps at the door; John Canty ceased
|
|
from snoring and said:
|
|
'Who knocketh? What wilt thou?'
|
|
A voice answered:
|
|
'Know'st thou who it was thou laid thy cudgel on?'
|
|
'No. Neither know I, nor care.'
|
|
'Belike thou'lt change thy note eftsoons. An thou would save thy
|
|
neck, nothing but flight may stead thee. The man is this moment
|
|
delivering up the ghost. 'Tis the priest, Father Andrew!'
|
|
'God-a-mercy!' exclaimed Canty. He roused his family, and hoarsely
|
|
commanded, 'Up with ye all and fly- or bide where ye are and perish!'
|
|
Scarcely five minutes later the Canty household were in the street
|
|
and flying for their lives. John Canty held the prince by the wrist,
|
|
and hurried him along the dark way, giving him this caution in a low
|
|
voice:
|
|
'Mind thy tongue, thou mad fool, and speak not our name. I will
|
|
choose me a new name, speedily, to throw the law's dogs off the scent.
|
|
Mind thy tongue, I tell thee!'
|
|
He growled these words to the rest of the family:
|
|
'If it so chance that we be separated, let each make for London
|
|
Bridge; whoso findeth himself as far as the last linen-draper's shop
|
|
on the bridge, let him tarry there till the others be come, then
|
|
will we flee into Southwark together.'
|
|
At this moment the party burst suddenly out of darkness into
|
|
light; and not only into light, but into the midst of a multitude of
|
|
singing, dancing, and shouting people, massed together on the
|
|
river-frontage. There was a line of bonfires stretching as far as
|
|
one could see, up and down the Thames; London Bridge was
|
|
illuminated; Southwark Bridge likewise; the entire river was aglow
|
|
with the flash and sheen of colored lights, and constant explosions of
|
|
fireworks filled the skies with an intricate commingling of shooting
|
|
splendors and a thick rain of dazzling sparks that almost turned night
|
|
into day; everywhere were crowds of revelers; all London seemed to
|
|
be at large.
|
|
John Canty delivered himself of a furious curse and commanded a
|
|
retreat; but it was too late. He and his tribe were swallowed up in
|
|
that swarming hive of humanity, and hopelessly separated from each
|
|
other in an instant. We are not considering that the prince was one of
|
|
his tribe; Canty still kept his grip upon him. The prince's heart
|
|
was beating high with hopes of escape now. A burly waterman,
|
|
considerably exalted with liquor, found himself rudely shoved by Canty
|
|
in his efforts to plow through the crowd; he laid his great hand on
|
|
Canty's shoulder and said:
|
|
'Nay, whither so fast, friend? Dost canker thy soul with sordid
|
|
business when all that be leal men and true make holiday?'
|
|
'Mine affairs are mine own, they concern thee not,' answered
|
|
Canty, roughly; 'take away thy hand and let me pass.'
|
|
'Sith that is thy humor, thou'lt not pass till thou'st drunk to
|
|
the Prince of Wales, I tell thee that,' said the waterman, barring the
|
|
way resolutely.
|
|
'Give me the cup, then, and make speed, make speed.'
|
|
Other revelers were interested by this time. They cried out:
|
|
'The loving-cup, the loving-cup! make the sour knave drink the
|
|
loving-cup, else will we feed him to the fishes.'
|
|
So a huge loving-cup was brought; the waterman, grasping it by one
|
|
of its handles, and with his other hand bearing up the end of an
|
|
imaginary napkin, presented it in due and ancient form to Canty, who
|
|
had to grasp the opposite handle with one of his hands and take off
|
|
the lid with the other, according to ancient custom.*(6) This left the
|
|
prince hand-free for a second, of course. He wasted no time, but dived
|
|
among the forest of legs about him and disappeared. In another
|
|
moment he could not have been harder to find, under that tossing sea
|
|
of life, if its billows had been the Atlantic's and he a lost
|
|
sixpence.
|
|
He very soon realized this fact, and straightway busied himself
|
|
about his own affairs without further thought of John Canty. He
|
|
quickly realized another thing, too. To wit, that a spurious Prince of
|
|
Wales was being feasted by the city in his stead. He easily
|
|
concluded that the pauper lad, Tom Canty, had deliberately taken
|
|
advantage of his stupendous opportunity and become a usurper.
|
|
Therefore there was but one course to pursue- find his way to
|
|
the Guildhall, make himself known, and denounce the impostor. He
|
|
also made up his mind that Tom should be allowed a reasonable time for
|
|
spiritual preparation, and then be hanged, drawn, and quartered,
|
|
according to the law and usage of the day, in cases of high treason.
|
|
CHAPTER XI
|
|
At Guildhall
|
|
|
|
THE royal barge, attended by its gorgeous fleet, took its
|
|
stately way down the Thames through the wilderness of illuminated
|
|
boats. The air was laden with music; the river-banks were beruffled
|
|
with joy- flames; the distant city lay in a soft luminous glow from
|
|
its countless invisible bonfires; above it rose many a slender spire
|
|
into the sky, incrusted with sparkling lights, wherefore in their
|
|
remoteness they seemed like jeweled lances thrust aloft; as the
|
|
fleet swept along, it was greeted from the banks with a continuous
|
|
hoarse roar of cheers and the ceaseless flash and boom of artillery.
|
|
To Tom Canty, half buried in his silken cushions, these sounds and
|
|
this spectacle were a wonder unspeakably sublime and astonishing. To
|
|
his little friends at his side, the Princess Elizabeth and the Lady
|
|
Jane Grey, they were nothing.
|
|
Arrived at the Dowgate, the fleet was towed up the limpid Walbrook
|
|
(whose channel has now been for two centuries buried out of sight
|
|
under acres of buildings) to Bucklersbury, past houses and under
|
|
bridges populous with merry-makers and brilliantly lighted, and at
|
|
last came to a halt in a basin where now is Barge Yard, in the
|
|
center of the ancient city of London. Tom disembarked, and he and
|
|
his gallant procession crossed Cheapside and made a short march
|
|
through the Old Jewry and Basinghall Street to the Guildhall.
|
|
Tom and his little ladies were received with due ceremony by the
|
|
Lord Mayor and the Fathers of the City, in their gold chains and
|
|
scarlet robes of state, and conducted to a rich canopy of state at the
|
|
head of the great hall, preceded by heralds making proclamation, and
|
|
by the Mace and the City Sword. The lords and ladies who were to
|
|
attend upon Tom and his two small friends took their places behind
|
|
their chairs.
|
|
At a lower table the court grandees and other guests of noble
|
|
degree were seated, with the magnates of the city; the commoners
|
|
took places at a multitude of tables on the main floor of the hall.
|
|
From their lofty vantage-ground, the giants Gog and Magog, the ancient
|
|
guardians of the city, contemplated the spectacle below them with eyes
|
|
grown familar to it in forgotten generations. There was a
|
|
bugle-blast and a proclamation, and a fat butler appeared in a high
|
|
perch in the leftward wall, followed by his servitors bearing with
|
|
impressive solemnity a royal Baron of Beef, smoking hot and ready
|
|
for the knife.
|
|
After grace, Tom (being instructed) rose- and the whole house with
|
|
him- and drank from a portly golden loving-cup with the Princess
|
|
Elizabeth; from her it passed to the Lady Jane, and then traversed the
|
|
general assemblage. So the banquet began.
|
|
By midnight the revelry was at its height. Now came one of those
|
|
picturesque spectacles so admired in that old day. A description of it
|
|
is still extant in the quaint wording of a chronicler who witnessed
|
|
it:
|
|
'Space being made, presently entered a baron and an earl appareled
|
|
after the Turkish fashion in long robes of bawdkin powdered with gold;
|
|
hats on their heads of crimson velvet, with great rolls of gold,
|
|
girded with two swords, called simitars, hanging by great bawdricks of
|
|
gold. Next came yet another baron and another earl, in two long
|
|
gowns of yellow satin, traversed with white satin, and in every bend
|
|
of white was a bend of crimson satin, after the fashion of Russia,
|
|
with furred hats of gray on their heads; either of them having an
|
|
hatchet in their hands, and boots with pykes' (points a foot long),
|
|
'turned up. And after them came a knight, then the Lord High
|
|
Admiral, and with him five nobles, in doublets of crimson velvet,
|
|
voyded low on the back and before to the cannel-bone, laced on the
|
|
breasts with chains of silver; and, over that, short cloaks of crimson
|
|
satin, and on their heads hats after the dancers' fashion, with
|
|
pheasants' feather in them. These were appareled after the fashion
|
|
of Prussia. The torch-bearers, which were about an hundred, were
|
|
appareled in crimson satin and green, like Moors, their faces black.
|
|
Next came in a mommarye. Then the minstrels, which were disguised,
|
|
danced; and the lords and ladies did wildly dance also, that it was
|
|
a pleasure to behold.'
|
|
And while Tom, in his high seat, was gazing upon this 'wild'
|
|
dancing, lost in admiration of the dazzling commingling of
|
|
kaleidoscopic colors which the whirling turmoil of gaudy figures below
|
|
him presented, the ragged but real Little Prince of Wales was
|
|
proclaiming his rights and his wrongs, denouncing the impostor, and
|
|
clamoring for admission at the gates of Guildhall! The crowd enjoyed
|
|
this episode prodigiously, and pressed forward and craned their
|
|
necks to see the small rioter. Presently they began to taunt him and
|
|
mock at him, purposely to goad him into a higher and still more
|
|
entertaining fury. Tears of mortification sprung to his eyes, but he
|
|
stood his ground and defied the mob right royally. Other taunts
|
|
followed, added mockings stung him, and he exclaimed:
|
|
'I tell ye again, you pack of unmannerly curs, I am the Prince
|
|
of Wales! And all forlorn and friendless as I be, with none to give me
|
|
word of grace or help me in my need, yet will not I be driven from
|
|
my ground, but will maintain it!'
|
|
'Though thou be prince or no prince 'tis all one, thou be'st a
|
|
gallant lad, and not friendless neither! Here stand I by thy side to
|
|
prove it; and mind I tell thee thou might'st have a worser friend than
|
|
Miles Hendon and yet not tire thy legs with seeking. Rest thy small
|
|
jaw, my child, I talk the language of these base kennel-rats like to a
|
|
very native.'
|
|
The speaker was a sort of Don Caesar de Bazan in dress, aspect,
|
|
and bearing. He was tall, trim-built, muscular. His doublet and trunks
|
|
were of rich material, but faded and threadbare, and their gold-lace
|
|
adornments were sadly tarnished; his ruff was rumpled and damaged; the
|
|
plume in his slouched hat was broken and had a bedraggled and
|
|
disreputable look; at his side he wore a long rapier in a rusty iron
|
|
sheath; his swaggering carriage marked him at once as a ruffler of the
|
|
camp. The speech of this fantastic figure was received with an
|
|
explosion of jeers and laughter. Some cried, ''Tis another prince in
|
|
disguise!' ''Ware thy tongue, friend, belike he is dangerous!' 'Marry,
|
|
he looketh it- mark his eye!' 'Pluck the lad from him- to the
|
|
horse-pond wi' the cub!'
|
|
Instantly a hand was laid upon the prince, under the impulse of
|
|
this happy thought; as instantly the stranger's long sword was out and
|
|
the meddler went to the earth under a sounding thump with the flat
|
|
of it. The next moment a score of voices shouted 'Kill the dog! kill
|
|
him! kill him!' and the mob closed in on the warrior, who backed
|
|
himself against a wall and began to lay about him with his long weapon
|
|
like a madman. His victims sprawled this way and that, but the
|
|
mob-tide poured over their prostrate forms and dashed itself against
|
|
the champion with undiminished fury. His moments seemed numbered,
|
|
his destruction certain, when suddenly a trumpet-blast sounded, a
|
|
voice shouted, 'Way for the king's messenger!' and a troop of horsemen
|
|
came charging down upon the mob, who fled out of harm's reach as
|
|
fast as their legs could carry them. The bold stranger caught up the
|
|
prince in his arms, and was soon far away from danger and the
|
|
multitude.
|
|
Return we within the Guildhall. Suddenly, high above the
|
|
jubilant roar and thunder of the revel, broke the clear peal of a
|
|
bugle-note. There was instant silence- a deep hush; then a single
|
|
voice rose- that of the messenger from the palace- and began to pipe
|
|
forth a proclamation, the whole multitude standing, listening. The
|
|
closing words, solemnly pronounced were:
|
|
'The king is dead!'
|
|
The great assemblage bent their heads upon their breasts with
|
|
one accord; remained so, in profound silence, a few moments, then
|
|
all sunk upon their knees in a body, stretched out their hands towards
|
|
Tom, and a mighty shout burst forth that seemed to shake the building:
|
|
'Long live the king!'
|
|
Poor Tom's dazed eyes wandered abroad over this stupefying
|
|
spectacle, and finally rested dreamily upon the kneeling princesses
|
|
beside him a moment, then upon the Earl of Hertford. A sudden
|
|
purpose dawned in his face. He said, in a low tone, at Lord Hertford's
|
|
ear:
|
|
'Answer me truly, on thy faith and honor! Uttered I here a
|
|
command, the which none but a king might hold privilege and
|
|
prerogative to utter, would such commandment be obeyed, and none
|
|
rise up to say me nay?'
|
|
'None, my liege, in all these realms. In thy person bides the
|
|
majesty of England. Thou art the king- thy word is law.'
|
|
Tom responded, in a strong, earnest voice, and with great
|
|
animation:
|
|
'Then shall the king's law be law of mercy, from this day, and
|
|
never more be law of blood! Up from thy knees and away! To the Tower
|
|
and say the king decrees the Duke of Norfolk shall not die!'*(7)
|
|
The words were caught up and carried eagerly from lip to lip far
|
|
and wide over the hall, and as Hertford hurried from the presence,
|
|
another prodigious shout burst forth:
|
|
'The reign of blood is ended! Long live Edward king of England!'
|
|
CHAPTER XII
|
|
The Prince and his Deliverer
|
|
|
|
AS soon as Miles Hendon and the little prince were clear of the
|
|
mob, they struck down through back lanes and alleys toward the
|
|
river. Their way was unobstructed until they approached London Bridge;
|
|
then they plowed into the multitude again, Hendon keeping a fast
|
|
grip upon the prince's- no, the king's- wrist. The tremendous news was
|
|
already abroad, and the boy learned it from a thousand voices at once-
|
|
'The king is dead!' The tidings struck a chill to the heart of the
|
|
poor little waif, and sent a shudder through his frame. He realized
|
|
the greatness of his loss, and was filled with a bitter grief; for the
|
|
grim tyrant who had been such a terror to others had always been
|
|
gentle with him. The tears sprung to his eyes and blurred all objects.
|
|
For an instant he felt himself the most forlorn, outcast, and forsaken
|
|
of God's creatures- then another cry shook the night with its
|
|
far-reaching thunders: 'Long live King Edward the Sixth!' and this
|
|
made his eyes kindle, and thrilled him with pride to his fingers'
|
|
ends. 'Ah,' he thought, 'how grand and strange it seems- I AM KING!'
|
|
Our friends threaded their way slowly through the throngs upon the
|
|
Bridge. This structure, which had stood for six hundred years, and had
|
|
been a noisy and populous thoroughfare all that time, was a curious
|
|
affair, for a closely packed rank of stores and shops, with family
|
|
quarters overhead, stretched along both sides of it, from one bank
|
|
of the river to the other. The Bridge was a sort of town to itself; it
|
|
had its inn, its beerhouses, its bakeries, its haberdasheries, its
|
|
food markets, its manufacturing industries, and even its church. It
|
|
looked upon the two neighbors which it linked together- London and
|
|
Southwark- as being well enough, as suburbs, but not otherwise
|
|
particularly important. It was a close corporation, so to speak; it
|
|
was a narrow town, of a single street a fifth of a mile long, its
|
|
population was but a village population, and everybody in it knew
|
|
all his fellow-townsmen intimately, and had known their fathers and
|
|
mothers before them- and all their little family affairs into the
|
|
bargain. It had its aristocracy, of course- its fine old families of
|
|
butchers, and bakers, and what not, who had occupied the same old
|
|
premises for five or six hundred years, and knew the great history
|
|
of the Bridge from beginning to end, and all its strange legends;
|
|
and who always talked bridgy talk, and thought bridgy thoughts, and
|
|
lied in a long, level, direct, substantial bridgy way. It was just the
|
|
sort of population to be narrow and ignorant and self-conceited.
|
|
Children were born on the Bridge, were reared there, grew to old age
|
|
and finally died without ever having set a foot upon any part of the
|
|
world but London Bridge alone. Such people would naturally imagine
|
|
that the mighty and interminable procession which moved through its
|
|
street night and day, with its confused roar of shouts and cries,
|
|
its neighings and bellowings and bleatings and its muffled
|
|
thunder-tramp, was the one great thing in this world, and themselves
|
|
somehow the proprietors of it. And so they were in effect- at least
|
|
they could exhibit it from their windows, and did- for a
|
|
consideration- whenever a returning king or hero gave it a fleeting
|
|
splendor, for there was no place like it for affording a long,
|
|
straight, uninterrupted view of marching columns.
|
|
Men born and reared upon the Bridge found life unendurably dull
|
|
and inane elsewhere. History tells of one of these who left the Bridge
|
|
at the age of seventy-one and retired to the country. But he could
|
|
only fret and toss in his bed; he could not go to sleep, the deep
|
|
stillness was so painful, so awful, so oppressive. When he was worn
|
|
out with it, at last, he fled back to his old home, a lean and haggard
|
|
specter, and fell peacefully to rest and pleasant dreams under the
|
|
lulling music of the lashing waters and the boom and crash and thunder
|
|
of London Bridge.
|
|
In the times of which we are writing, the Bridge furnished 'object
|
|
lessons' in English history, for its children- namely, the livid and
|
|
decaying heads of renowned men impaled upon iron spikes atop of its
|
|
gateways. But we digress.
|
|
Hendon's lodgings were in the little inn on the Bridge. As he
|
|
neared the door with his small friend, a rough voice said:
|
|
'So, thou'rt come at last! Thou'lt not escape again. I warrant
|
|
thee; and if pounding thy bones to a pudding can teach thee
|
|
somewhat, thou'lt not keep us waiting another time, mayhap'- and
|
|
John Canty put out his hand to seize the boy.
|
|
Miles Hendon stepped in the way, and said:
|
|
'Not too fast, friend. Thou art needlessly rough, methinks. What
|
|
is the lad to thee?'
|
|
'If it be any business of thine to make and meddle in others'
|
|
affairs, he is my son.'
|
|
''Tis a lie!' cried the little king, hotly.
|
|
'Boldly said, and I believe thee, whether thy small head-piece
|
|
be sound or cracked, my boy. But whether this scurvy ruffian be thy
|
|
father or no, 'tis all one, he shall not have thee to beat thee and
|
|
abuse, according to his threat, so thou prefer to abide with me.'
|
|
'I do, I do- I know him not, I loathe him, and will die before I
|
|
will go with him.'
|
|
'Then 'tis settled, and there is naught more to say.'
|
|
'We will see, as to that!' exclaimed John Canty, striding past
|
|
Hendon to get at the boy; 'by force shall he-'
|
|
'If thou do but touch him, thou animated offal, I will spit thee
|
|
like a goose!' said Hendon, barring the way and laying his hand upon
|
|
his sword-hilt. Canty drew back. 'Now mark ye,' continued Hendon, 'I
|
|
took this lad under my protection when a mob such as thou would have
|
|
mishandled him, mayhap killed him; dost imagine I will desert him
|
|
now to a worser fate?- for whether thou art his father or no- and
|
|
sooth to say, I think it is a lie- a decent swift death were better
|
|
for such a lad than life in such brute hands as thine. So go thy ways,
|
|
and set quick about it, for I like not much bandying of words, being
|
|
not overpatient in my nature.'
|
|
John Canty moved off, muttering threats and curses, and was
|
|
swallowed from sight in the crowd. Hendon ascended three flights of
|
|
stairs to his room, with his charge, after ordering a meal to be
|
|
sent thither. It was a poor apartment, with a shabby bed and some odds
|
|
and ends of old furniture in it, and was vaguely lighted by a couple
|
|
of sickly candles. The little king dragged himself to the bed and
|
|
lay down upon it, almost exhausted with hunger and fatigue. He had
|
|
been on his feet a good part of a day and a night, for it was now
|
|
two or three o'clock in the morning, and had eaten nothing meantime.
|
|
He murmured drowsily:
|
|
'Prithee, call me when the table is spread,' and sunk into a
|
|
deep sleep immediately.
|
|
A smile twinkled in Hendon's eye, and he said to himself:
|
|
'By the mass, the little beggar takes to one's quarters and usurps
|
|
one's bed with as natural and easy a grace as if he owned them- with
|
|
never a by-your-leave or so-please-it-you, or anything of the sort. In
|
|
his diseased ravings he called himself the Prince of Wales, and
|
|
bravely doth he keep up the character. Poor little friendless rat,
|
|
doubtless his mind has been disordered with ill usage. Well, I will be
|
|
his friend; I have saved him, and it draweth me strongly to him;
|
|
already I love the bold-tongued little rascal. How soldierlike he
|
|
faced the smutty rabble and flung back his high defiance! And what a
|
|
comely, sweet and gentle face he hath, now that sleep hath conjured
|
|
away its troubles and its griefs. I will teach him, I will cure his
|
|
malady; yea, I will be his elder brother, and care for him and watch
|
|
over him; and who so would shame him or do him hurt, may order his
|
|
shroud, for though I be burnt for it he shall need it!'
|
|
He bent over the boy and contemplated him with kind and pitying
|
|
interest, tapping the young cheek tenderly and smoothing back the
|
|
tangled curls with his great brown hand. A slight shiver passed over
|
|
the boy's form. Hendon muttered:
|
|
'See, now, how like a man it was to let him lie here uncovered and
|
|
fill his body with deadly rheums. Now what shall I do? 'Twill wake him
|
|
to take him up and put him within the bed, and he sorely needeth
|
|
sleep.'
|
|
He looked about for extra covering, but finding none, doffed his
|
|
doublet and wrapped the lad in it, saying, 'I am used to nipping air
|
|
and scant apparel, 'tis little I shall mind the cold'- then walked
|
|
up and down the room to keep his blood in motion, soliloquizing as
|
|
before.
|
|
'His injured mind persuades him he is Prince of Wales; 'twill be
|
|
odd to have a Prince of Wales still with us, now that he that was
|
|
the prince is prince no more, but king- for this poor mind is set upon
|
|
the one fantasy, and will not reason out that now it should cast by
|
|
the prince and call itself the king.... If my father liveth still,
|
|
after these seven years that I have heard naught from home in my
|
|
foreign dungeon, he will welcome the poor lad and give him generous
|
|
shelter for my sake; so will my good elder brother, Arthur; my other
|
|
brother, Hugh- but I will crack his crown, an he interfere, the
|
|
fox-hearted, ill-conditioned animal! Yes, thither will we fare- and
|
|
straightway, too.'
|
|
A servant entered with a smoking meal, disposed it upon a small
|
|
deal table, placed the chairs, and took his departure, leaving such
|
|
cheap lodgers as these to wait upon themselves. The door slammed after
|
|
him, and the noise woke the boy, who sprung to a sitting posture,
|
|
and shot a glad glance about him; then a grieved look came into his
|
|
face and he murmured to himself, with a deep sigh, 'Alack, it was
|
|
but a dream. Woe is me.' Next he noticed Miles Hendon's doublet-
|
|
glanced from that to Hendon, comprehended the sacrifice that had
|
|
been made for him, and said, gently:
|
|
'Thou art good to me, yes, thou art very good to me. Take it and
|
|
put it on- I shall not need it more.'
|
|
Then he got up and walked to the washstand in the corner, and
|
|
stood there waiting. Hendon said in a cheery voice:
|
|
'We'll have a right hearty sup and bite now, for everything is
|
|
savory and smoking hot, and that and thy nap together will make thee a
|
|
little man again, never fear!'
|
|
The boy made no answer, but bent a steady look, that was filled
|
|
with grave surprise, and also somewhat touched with impatience, upon
|
|
the tall knight of the sword. Hendon was puzzled, and said:
|
|
'What's amiss?'
|
|
'Good sir, I would wash me.'
|
|
'Oh, is that all! Ask no permission of Miles Hendon for aught thou
|
|
cravest. Make thyself perfectly free here and welcome, with all that
|
|
are his belongings.'
|
|
Still the boy stood, and moved not; more, he tapped the floor once
|
|
or twice with his small impatient foot. Hendon was wholly perplexed.
|
|
Said he:
|
|
'Bless us, what is it?'
|
|
'Prithee, pour the water, and make not so many words!'
|
|
Hendon, suppressing a horse-laugh, and saying to himself, 'By
|
|
all the saints, but this is admirable!' stepped briskly forward and
|
|
did the small insolent's bidding; then stood by, in a sort of
|
|
stupefaction, until the command, 'Come- the towel!' woke him sharply
|
|
up. He took up a towel from under the boy's nose and handed it to him,
|
|
without comment. He now proceeded to comfort his own face with a wash,
|
|
and while he was at it his adopted child seated himself at the table
|
|
and prepared to fall to. Hendon despatched his ablutions with
|
|
alacrity, then drew back the other chair and was about to place
|
|
himself at table, when the boy said, indignantly:
|
|
'Forbear! Wouldst sit in the presence of the king?'
|
|
This blow staggered Hendon to his foundations. He muttered to
|
|
himself, 'Lo, the poor thing's madness is up with the time! it hath
|
|
changed with the great change that is come to the realm, and now in
|
|
fancy is he king! Good lack, I must humor the conceit, too- there is
|
|
no other way- faith, he would order me to the Tower, else!'
|
|
And pleased with this jest, he removed the chair from the table,
|
|
took his stand behind the king, and proceeded to wait upon him in
|
|
the courtliest way he was capable of.
|
|
When the king ate, the rigor of his royal dignity relaxed a
|
|
little, and with his growing contentment came a desire to talk. He
|
|
said:
|
|
'I think thou callest thyself Miles Hendon, if I heard thee
|
|
aright?'
|
|
'Yes, sire,' Miles replied then observed to himself, 'If I must
|
|
humor the poor lad's madness, I must sire him, I must majesty him, I
|
|
must not go by halves, I must stick at nothing that belongeth to the
|
|
part I play, else shall I play it ill and work evil to this charitable
|
|
and kindly cause.'
|
|
The king warmed his heart with a second glass of wine, and said:
|
|
'I would know thee- tell me thy story. Thou hast a gallant way with
|
|
thee, and a noble- art nobly born?'
|
|
'We are of the tail of the nobility, good your majesty. My
|
|
father is a baronet- one of the smaller lords, by knight
|
|
service*(8)- Sir Richard Hendon, of Hendon Hall, by Monk's Holm in
|
|
Kent.'
|
|
'The name has escaped my memory. Go on- tell me thy story.'
|
|
''Tis not much, your majesty, yet perchance it may beguile a short
|
|
half-hour for want of a better. My father, Sir Richard, is very
|
|
rich, and of a most generous nature. My mother died whilst I was yet a
|
|
boy. I have two brothers: Arthur, my elder, with a soul like to his
|
|
father's; and Hugh, younger than I, a mean spirit, covetous,
|
|
treacherous, vicious, underhanded- a reptile. Such was he from the
|
|
cradle; such was he ten years past, when I last saw him- a ripe rascal
|
|
at nineteen, I being twenty then, and Arthur twenty-two. There is none
|
|
other of us but the Lady Edith, my cousin- she was sixteen, then-
|
|
beautiful, gentle, good, the daughter of an earl, the last of her
|
|
race, heiress of a great fortune and a lapsed title. My father was her
|
|
guardian. I loved her and she loved me; but she was betrothed to
|
|
Arthur from the cradle, and Sir Richard would not suffer the
|
|
contract to be broken. Arthur loved another maid, and bade us be of
|
|
good cheer and hold fast to the hope that delay and luck together
|
|
would some day give success to our several causes. Hugh loved the Lady
|
|
Edith's fortune, though in truth he said it was herself he loved-
|
|
but then 'twas his way, alway, to say one thing and mean the other.
|
|
But he lost his arts upon the girl; he could deceive my father, but
|
|
none else. My father loved him best of us all, and trusted and
|
|
believed him; for he was the youngest child and others hated him-
|
|
these qualities being in all ages sufficient to win a parent's dearest
|
|
love; and he had a smooth persuasive tongue, with an admirable gift of
|
|
lying- and these be qualities which do mightily assist a blind
|
|
affection to cozen itself. I was wild- in troth I might go yet farther
|
|
and say very wild, though 'twas a wildness of an innocent sort,
|
|
since it hurt none but me, brought shame to none, nor loss, nor had in
|
|
it any taint of crime or baseness, or what might not beseem mine
|
|
honorable degree.
|
|
'Yet did my brother Hugh turn these faults to good account- he
|
|
seeing that our brother Arthur's health was but indifferent, and
|
|
hoping the worst might work him profit were I swept out of the path-
|
|
so- but 'twere a long tale, good my liege, and little worth the
|
|
telling. Briefly, then, this brother did deftly magnify my faults
|
|
and make them crimes; ending his base work with finding a silken
|
|
ladder in mine apartments- conveyed thither by his own means- and
|
|
did convince my father by this, and suborned evidence of servants
|
|
and other lying knaves, that I was minded to carry off my Edith and
|
|
marry with her, in rank defiance of his will.
|
|
'Three years of banishment from home and England might make a
|
|
soldier and a man of me, my father said, and teach me some degree of
|
|
wisdom. I fought out my long probation in the continental wars,
|
|
tasting sumptuously of hard knocks, privation, and adventure; but in
|
|
my last battle I was taken captive, and during the seven years that
|
|
have waxed and waned since then, a foreign dungeon hath harbored me.
|
|
Through wit and courage I won to the free air at last, and fled hither
|
|
straight; and am but just arrived, right poor in purse and raiment,
|
|
and poorer still in knowledge of what these dull seven years have
|
|
wrought at Hendon Hall, its people and belongings. So please you, sir,
|
|
my meager tale is told.'
|
|
'Thou hast been shamefully abused!' said the little king, with a
|
|
flashing eye. 'But I will right thee- by the cross will I! The king
|
|
hath said it.'
|
|
Then, fired by the story of Miles's wrongs, he loosed his tongue
|
|
and poured the history of his own recent misfortunes into the ears
|
|
of his astonished listener. When he had finished, Miles said to
|
|
himself.
|
|
'Lo, what an imagination he hath! Verily this is no common mind;
|
|
else, crazed or sane, it could not weave so straight and gaudy a
|
|
tale as this out of the airy nothings wherewith it hath wrought this
|
|
curious romaunt. Poor ruined little head, it shall not lack friend
|
|
or shelter whilst I bide with the living. He shall never leave my
|
|
side; he shall be my pet, my little comrade. And he shall be cured!-
|
|
aye, made whole and sound- then will he make himself a name- and proud
|
|
shall I be to say, "Yes, he is mine- I took him, a homeless little
|
|
ragamuffin, but I saw what was in him, and I said his name would be
|
|
heard some day- behold him, observe him- was I right?"'
|
|
The king spoke- in a thoughtful, measured voice:
|
|
'Thou didst save me injury and shame, perchance my life, and so my
|
|
crown. Such service demandeth rich reward. Name thy desire, and so
|
|
it be within the compass of my royal power, it is thine.'
|
|
This fantastic suggestion startled Hendon out of his reverie. He
|
|
was about to thank the king and put the matter aside with saying he
|
|
bad only done his duty and desired no reward, but a wiser thought came
|
|
into his head, and he asked leave to be silent a few moments and
|
|
consider the gracious offer- an idea which the king gravely
|
|
approved, remarking that it was best to be not too hasty with a
|
|
thing of such great import.
|
|
Miles reflected during some moments, then said to himself, 'Yes,
|
|
that is the thing to do- by any other means it were impossible to
|
|
get at it- and certes, this hour's experience has taught me 'twould be
|
|
most wearing and inconvenient to continue it as it is. Yes, I will
|
|
propose it; 'twas a happy accident that I did not throw the chance
|
|
away.' Then he dropped upon one knee and said:
|
|
'My poor service went not beyond the limit of a subject's simple
|
|
duty, and therefore hath no merit; but since your majesty is pleased
|
|
to hold it worthy some reward, I take heart of grace to make
|
|
petition to this effect. Near four hundred years ago, as your grace
|
|
knoweth, there being ill blood betwixt John, king of England, and
|
|
the king of France, it was decreed that two champions should fight
|
|
together in the lists, and so settle the dispute by what is called the
|
|
arbitrament of God. These two kings, and the Spanish king, being
|
|
assembled to witness and judge the conflict, the French champion
|
|
appeared; but so redoubtable was he that our English knights refused
|
|
to measure weapons with him. So the matter, which was a weighty one,
|
|
was like to go against the English monarch by default. Now in the
|
|
Tower lay the Lord de Courcy, the mightiest arm in England, stripped
|
|
of his honors and possessions, and wasting with long captivity. Appeal
|
|
was made to him; he gave assent, and came forth arrayed for battle;
|
|
but no sooner did the Frenchman glimpse his huge frame and hear his
|
|
famous name but he fled away, and the French king's cause was lost.
|
|
King John restored De Courcy's titles and possessions, and said, "Name
|
|
thy wish and thou shalt have it, though it cost me half my kingdom";
|
|
whereat De Courcy, kneeling, as I do now, made answerer, "This,
|
|
then, I ask, my liege; that I and my successors may have and hold
|
|
the privilege of remaining covered in the presence of the kings of
|
|
England, henceforth while the throne shall last." The boon was
|
|
granted, as your majesty knoweth; and there hath been no time, these
|
|
four hundred years, that that line has failed of an heir; and so, even
|
|
unto this day, the head of that ancient house still weareth his hat or
|
|
helm before the king's majesty, without let or hindrance, and this
|
|
none other may do.*(9) Invoking this precedent in aid of my prayer,
|
|
I beseech the king to grant to me but this one grace and privilege- to
|
|
my more than sufficient reward- and none other, to wit: that I and
|
|
my heirs, forever, may sit in the presence of the majesty of England!'
|
|
'Rise, Sir Miles Hendon, knight,' said the king, gravely- giving
|
|
the accolade with Hendon's sword- 'rise, and seat thyself. Thy
|
|
petition is granted. While England remains, and the crown continues,
|
|
the privilege shall not lapse.'
|
|
His majesty walked apart, musing, and Hendon dropped into a
|
|
chair at table, observing to himself, ''Twas a brave thought, and hath
|
|
wrought me a mighty deliverance; my legs are grievously wearied. An
|
|
I had not thought of that, I must have had to stand for weeks, till my
|
|
poor lad's wits are cured.' After a little he went on, 'And so I am
|
|
become a knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows! A most odd and
|
|
strange position, truly, for one so matter-of-fact as I. I will not
|
|
laugh- no, God forbid, for this thing which is so substanceless to
|
|
me is real to him. And to me, also, in one way, it is not a falsity,
|
|
for it reflects with truth the sweet and generous spirit that is in
|
|
him.' After a pause: 'Ah, what if he should call me by my fine title
|
|
before folk!- there'd be a merry contrast betwixt my glory and my
|
|
raiment! But no matter; let him call me what he will, so it please
|
|
him; I shall be content.'
|
|
CHAPTER XIII
|
|
The Dissappearance of the Prince
|
|
|
|
A HEAVY drowsiness presently fell upon the two comrades. The
|
|
king said:
|
|
'Remove these rags'- meaning his clothing.
|
|
Hendon disappareled the boy without dissent or remark, tucked
|
|
him up in bed, then glanced about the room, saying to himself,
|
|
ruefully, 'He hath taken my bed again, as before- marry, what shall
|
|
I do?' The little king observed his perplexity, and dissipated it with
|
|
a word. He said, sleepily:
|
|
'Thou wilt sleep athwart the door, and guard it.' In a moment more
|
|
he was out of his troubles, in a deep slumber.
|
|
'Dear heart, he should have been born a king!' muttered Hendon,
|
|
admiringly, 'he playeth the part to a marvel.'
|
|
Then he stretched himself across the door, on the floor, saying
|
|
contentedly:
|
|
'I have lodged worse for seven years; 'twould be but ill gratitude
|
|
to Him above to find fault with this.'
|
|
He dropped asleep as the dawn appeared. Toward noon he rose,
|
|
uncovered his unconscious ward- a section at a time- and took his
|
|
measure with a string. The king awoke, just as he had completed his
|
|
work, complained of the cold, and asked what he was doing.
|
|
''Tis done now, my liege,' said Hendon; 'I have a bit of
|
|
business outside, but will presently return; sleep thou again- thou
|
|
needest it. There- let me cover thy head also- thou'lt be warm the
|
|
sooner.'
|
|
The king was back in dreamland before this speech was ended. Miles
|
|
slipped softly out, and slipped as softly in again, in the course of
|
|
thirty or forty minutes, with a complete second-hand suit of boy's
|
|
clothing, of cheap material, and showing signs of wear; but tidy,
|
|
and suited to the season of the year. He seated himself and began to
|
|
overhaul his purchase, mumbling to himself:
|
|
'A longer purse would have got a better sort, but when one has not
|
|
the long purse one must be content with what a short one may do-
|
|
|
|
'"There was a woman in our town,
|
|
In our town did dwell"-
|
|
|
|
'He stirred, methinks- I must sing in a less thunderous key;
|
|
'tis not good to mar his sleep, with this journey before him and he so
|
|
wearied out, poorchap.... This garment- 'tis well enough- a stitch
|
|
here and another one there will set it aright. This other is better,
|
|
albeit a stitch or two will not come amiss in it, likewise.... These
|
|
be very good and sound, and will keep his small feet warm and dry-
|
|
an odd new thing to him, belike, since he has doubtless been used to
|
|
foot it bare, winters and summers the same.... Would thread were
|
|
bread, seeing one getteth a year's sufficiency for a farthing, and
|
|
such a brave big needle without cost, for mere love. Now shall I
|
|
have the demon's own time to thread it!'
|
|
And so he had. He did as men have always done, and probably always
|
|
will do, to the end of time- held the needle still, and tried to
|
|
thrust the thread through the eye, which is the opposite of a
|
|
woman's way. Time and time again the thread missed the mark, going
|
|
sometimes on one side of the needle, sometimes on the other, sometimes
|
|
doubling up against the shaft; but he was patient, having been through
|
|
these experiences before, when he was soldiering. He succeeded at
|
|
last, and took up the garment that had lain waiting, meantime,
|
|
across his lap, and began his work. 'The inn is paid- the breakfast
|
|
that is to come, included- and there is wherewithal left to buy a
|
|
couple of donkeys and meet our little costs for the two or three
|
|
days betwixt this and the plenty that awaits us at Hendon Hall-
|
|
|
|
'"She loved her hus"-
|
|
|
|
'Body o' me! I have driven the needle under my nail!... It matters
|
|
little- 'tis not a novelty- yet 'tis not a convenience, neither.... We
|
|
shall be merry there, little one, never doubt it! Thy troubles will
|
|
vanish there, and likewise thy sad distemper-
|
|
|
|
'"She loved her husband dearilee,
|
|
But another man"-
|
|
|
|
'These be noble large stitches!'- holding the garment up and
|
|
viewing it admiringly- 'they have a grandeur and a majesty that do
|
|
cause these small stingy ones of the tailor-man to look mighty
|
|
paltry and plebeian-
|
|
|
|
'"She loved her husband dearilee,
|
|
But another man he loved she,"-
|
|
|
|
'Marry, 'tis done- a goodly piece of work, too, and wrought with
|
|
expedition. Now will I wake him, apparel him, pour for him, feed
|
|
him, and then will we hie us to the mart by the Tabard inn in
|
|
Southwark and- be pleased to rise, my liege!- he answereth not- what
|
|
ho, my liege!- of a truth must I profane his sacred person with a
|
|
touch, sith his slumber is deaf to speech. What!'
|
|
He threw back the covers- the boy was gone!
|
|
He stared about him in speechless astonishment for a moment;
|
|
noticed for the first time that his ward's ragged raiment was also
|
|
missing, then he began to rage and storm, and shout for the
|
|
inn-keeper. At that moment a servant entered with the breakfast.
|
|
'Explain, thou limb of Satan, or thy time is come! 'roared the man
|
|
of war, and made so savage a spring toward the waiter that this latter
|
|
could not find his tongue, for the instant, for fright and surprise.
|
|
'Where is the boy?'
|
|
In disjointed and trembling syllables the man gave the information
|
|
desired.
|
|
'You were hardly gone from the place, your worship, when a youth
|
|
came running and said it was your worship's will that the boy come
|
|
to you straight, at the bridge-end on the Southwark side. I brought
|
|
him thither; and when he woke the lad and gave his message, the lad
|
|
did grumble some little for being disturbed 'so early,' as he called
|
|
it, but straightway trussed on his rags and went with the youth,
|
|
only saying it had been better manners that your worship came
|
|
yourself, not sent a stranger- and so-'
|
|
'And so thou'rt a fool!- a fool, and easily cozened- hang all
|
|
thy breed! Yet mayhap no hurt is done. Possibly no harm is meant the
|
|
boy. I will go fetch him. Make the table ready. Stay! the coverings of
|
|
the bed were disposed as if one lay beneath them- happened that by
|
|
accident?'
|
|
'I know not, good your worship. I saw the youth meddle with
|
|
them- he that came for the boy.'
|
|
'Thousand deaths! 'twas done to deceive me- 'tis plain 'twas
|
|
done to gain time. Hark ye! Was that youth alone?'
|
|
'All alone, your worship.'
|
|
'Art sure?'
|
|
'Sure, your worship.'
|
|
'Collect thy scattered wits- bethink thee- take time, man.'
|
|
After a moment's thought, the servant said:
|
|
'When he came, none came with him; but now I remember me that as
|
|
the two stepped into the throng of the Bridge, a ruffian-looking man
|
|
plunged out from some near place; and just as he was joining them-'
|
|
'What then?- out with it!' thundered the impatient Hendon,
|
|
interrupting.
|
|
'Just then the crowd lapped them up and closed them in, and I
|
|
saw no more, being called by my master, who was in a rage because a
|
|
joint that the scrivener had ordered was forgot, though I take all the
|
|
saints to witness that to blame me for that miscarriage were like
|
|
holding the unborn babe to judgment for sins com-'
|
|
'Out of my sight, idiot! Thy prating drives me mad! Hold!
|
|
whither art flying? Canst not bide still an instant? Went they
|
|
toward Southwark?'
|
|
'Even so, your worship- for, as I said before, as to that
|
|
detestable joint, the babe unborn is no whit more blameless than-'
|
|
'Art here yet! And prating still? Vanish, lest I throttle thee!'
|
|
The servitor vanished. Hendon followed after him, passed him, and
|
|
plunged down the stairs two steps at a stride, muttering, ''Tis that
|
|
scurvy villain that claimed he was his son. I have lost thee, my
|
|
poor little mad master- it is a bitter thought- and I had come to love
|
|
thee so! No! by book and bell, not lost! Not lost, for I will
|
|
ransack the land till I find thee again. Poor child, yonder is his
|
|
breakfast- and mine, but I have no hunger now- so, let the rats have
|
|
it- speed, speed! that is the word!' As he wormed his swift way
|
|
through the noisy multitudes upon the Bridge, he several times said to
|
|
himself- clinging to the thought as if it were a particularly pleasing
|
|
one: 'He grumbled but he went- he went, yes, because he thought
|
|
Miles Hendon asked it, sweet lad- he would ne'er have done it for
|
|
another, I know it well!'
|
|
CHAPTER XIV
|
|
'Le Roi est Mort - Vive le Roi'
|
|
|
|
TOWARD daylight of the same morning, Tom Canty stirred out of a
|
|
heavy sleep and opened his eyes in the dark. He lay silent a few
|
|
moments, trying to analyze his confused thoughts and impressions,
|
|
and get some sort of meaning out of them, then suddenly he burst out
|
|
in a rapturous but guarded voice:
|
|
'I see it all, I see it all! Now God be thanked, I am, indeed,
|
|
awake at last! Come, joy! vanish, sorrow! Ho, Nan! Bet! kick off
|
|
your straw and hie ye hither to my side, till I do pour into your
|
|
unbelieving ears the wildest madcap dream that ever the spirits of
|
|
night did conjure up to astonish the soul of man withal!... Ho, Nan, I
|
|
say! Bet!'...
|
|
A dim form appeared at his side, and a voice said:
|
|
'Wilt deign to deliver thy commands?'
|
|
'Commands?... Oh, woe is me, I know thy voice! Speak, thou- who am
|
|
I?'
|
|
'Thou? In sooth, yesternight wert thou the Prince of Wales, to-day
|
|
art thou my most gracious liege, Edward, king of England.'
|
|
Tom buried his head among his pillows, murmuring plaintively:
|
|
'Alack, it was no dream! Go to thy rest, sweet sir- leave me to my
|
|
sorrows.'
|
|
Tom slept again, and after a time he had this pleasant dream. He
|
|
thought it was summer and he was playing, all alone, in the fair
|
|
meadow called Goodman's Fields, when a dwarf only a foot high, with
|
|
long red whiskers and a humped back, appeared to him suddenly and
|
|
said, 'Dig, by that stump.' He did so, and found twelve bright new
|
|
pennies- wonderful riches! Yet this was not the best of it; for the
|
|
dwarf said:
|
|
'I know thee. Thou art a good lad and deserving; thy distresses
|
|
shall end, for the day of thy reward is come. Dig here every seventh
|
|
day, and thou shalt find always the same treasure, twelve bright new
|
|
pennies. Tell none- keep the secret.'
|
|
Then the dwarf vanished, and Tom flew to Offal Court with his
|
|
prize, saying to himself, 'Every night will I give my father a
|
|
penny; he will think I begged it, it will glad his heart, and I
|
|
shall no more be beaten. One penny every week the good priest that
|
|
teacheth me shall have; mother, Nan, and Bet the other four. We be
|
|
done with hunger and rags now, done with fears and frets and savage
|
|
usage.'
|
|
In his dream he reached his sordid home all out of breath, but
|
|
with eyes dancing with grateful enthusiasm; cast four of his pennies
|
|
into his mother's lap and cried out:
|
|
'They are for thee!- all of them, every one!- for thee and Nan and
|
|
Bet- and honestly come by, not begged nor stolen!'
|
|
The happy and astonished mother strained him to her breast and
|
|
exclaimed:
|
|
'It waxeth late- may it please your majesty to rise?'
|
|
Ah, that was not the answer he was expecting. The dream had
|
|
snapped asunder- he was awake.
|
|
He opened his eyes- the richly clad First Lord of the Bedchamber
|
|
was kneeling by his couch. The gladness of the lying dream faded away-
|
|
the poor boy recognized that he was still a captive and a king. The
|
|
room was filled with courtiers clothed in purple mantles- the mourning
|
|
color- and with noble servants of the monarch. Tom sat up in bed and
|
|
gazed out from the heavy silken curtains upon this fine company.
|
|
The weighty business of dressing began, and one courtier after
|
|
another knelt and paid his court and offered to the little king his
|
|
condolences upon his heavy loss, while the dressing proceeded. In
|
|
the beginning, a shirt was taken up by the Chief Equerry in Waiting,
|
|
who passed it to the First Lord of the Buckhounds, who passed it to
|
|
the Second Gentleman of the Bedchamber, who passed it to the Head
|
|
Ranger of Windsor Forest, who passed it to the Third Groom of the
|
|
Stole, who passed it to the Chancellor Royal of the Duchy of
|
|
Lancaster, who passed it to the Master of the Wardrobe, who passed
|
|
it to Norroy King-at-Arms, who passed it to the Constable of the
|
|
Tower, who passed it to the Chief Steward of the Household, who passed
|
|
it to the Hereditary Grand Diaperer, who passed it to the Lord High
|
|
Admiral of England, who passed it to the Archbishop of Canterbury, who
|
|
passed it to the First Lord of the Bedchamber, who took what was
|
|
left of it and put it on Tom. Poor little wondering chap, it
|
|
reminded him of passing buckets at a fire.
|
|
Each garment in its turn had to go through this slow and solemn
|
|
process; consequently Tom grew very weary of the ceremony; so weary
|
|
that he felt an almost gushing gratefulness when he at last saw his
|
|
long silken hose begin the journey down the line and knew that the end
|
|
of the matter was drawing near. But he exulted too soon. The First
|
|
Lord of the Bedchamber received the hose and was about to encase Tom's
|
|
legs in them, when a sudden flush invaded his face and he hurriedly
|
|
hustled the things back into the hands of the Archbishop of Canterbury
|
|
with an astounded look and a whispered, 'See, my lord!'- pointing to a
|
|
something connected with the hose. The Archbishop paled, then flushed,
|
|
and passed the hose to the Lord High Admiral, whispering 'See, my
|
|
lord!' The Admiral passed the hose to the Hereditary Grand Diaperer,
|
|
and had hardly breath enough in his body to ejaculate, 'See, my lord!'
|
|
The hose drifted backward along the line, to the Chief Steward of
|
|
the Household, the Constable of the Tower, Norroy King-at-Arms, the
|
|
Master of the Wardrobe, the Chancellor Royal of the Duchy of
|
|
Lancaster, the Third Groom of the Stole, the Head Ranger of Windsor
|
|
Forest, the Second Gentleman of the Bedchamber, the First Lord of
|
|
the Buckhounds- accompanied always with that amazed and frightened
|
|
'See! see!'- till they finally reached the hands of the Chief
|
|
Equerry in Waiting, who gazed a moment, with a pallid face, upon
|
|
what had caused all this dismay, then hoarsely whispered 'Body of my
|
|
life, a tag gone from a truss point!- to the Tower with the Head
|
|
Keeper of the King's Hose!'- after which he leaned upon the shoulder
|
|
of the First Lord of the Buckhounds to regather his vanished
|
|
strength while fresh hose, without any damaged strings to them, were
|
|
brought.
|
|
But all things must have an end, and so in time Tom Canty was in a
|
|
condition to get out of bed. The proper official poured water, the
|
|
proper official engineered the washing, the proper official stood by
|
|
with a towel, and by and by Tom got safely through the purifying stage
|
|
and was ready for the services of the Hairdresser-Royal. When he at
|
|
length emerged from his master's hands, he was a gracious figure and
|
|
as pretty as a girl, in his mantle and trunks of purple satin, and
|
|
purple-plumed cap. He now moved in state toward his breakfast-room,
|
|
through the midst of the courtly assemblage; and as he passed, these
|
|
fell back, leaving his way free, and dropped upon their knees.
|
|
After breakfast he was conducted, with regal ceremony, attended by
|
|
his great officers and his guard of fifty Gentlemen Pensioners bearing
|
|
gilt battle-axes, to the throne-room, where he proceeded to transact
|
|
business of state. His 'uncle' Lord Hertford, took his stand by the
|
|
throne, to assist he royal mind with wise counsel.
|
|
The body of illustrious men named by the late king as his
|
|
executors, appeared, to ask Tom's approval of certain acts of
|
|
theirs- rather a form, and yet not wholly a form, since there was no
|
|
Protector as yet. The Archbishop of Canterbury made report of the
|
|
decree of the Council of Executors concerning the obsequies of his
|
|
late most illustrious majesty, and finished by reading the
|
|
signatures of the executors, to wit: the Archbishop of Canterbury; the
|
|
Lord Chancellor of England; William Lord St. John; John Lord
|
|
Russell; Edward Earl of Hertford; John Viscount Lisle; Cuthbert Bishop
|
|
of Durham-
|
|
Tom was not listening- an earlier clause of the document was
|
|
puzzling him. At this point he turned and whispered to Lord Hertford:
|
|
'What day did he say the burial hath been appointed for?'
|
|
'The 16th of the coming month, my liege.'
|
|
''Tis a strange folly. Will he keep?'
|
|
Poor chap, he was still new to the customs of royalty; he was used
|
|
to seeing the forlorn dead of Offal Court hustled out of the way
|
|
with a very different sort of expedition. However, the Lord Hertford
|
|
set his mind at rest with a word or two.
|
|
A secretary of state presented an order of the council
|
|
appointing the morrow at eleven for the reception of the foreign
|
|
ambassadors, and desired the king's assent.
|
|
Tom turned an inquiring look toward Hertford, who whispered:
|
|
'Your majesty will signify consent. They come to testify their
|
|
royal masters' sense of the heavy calamity which hath visited your
|
|
grace and the realm of England.'
|
|
Tom did as he was bidden. Another secretary began to read a
|
|
preamble concerning the expenses of the late king's household, which
|
|
had amounted to L28,000 during the preceding six months- a sum so vast
|
|
that it made Tom Canty gasp; he gasped again when the fact appeared
|
|
that L20,000 of this money were still owing and unpaid;*(10) and
|
|
once more when it appeared that the king's coffers were about empty,
|
|
and his twelve hundred servants much embarrassed for lack of the wages
|
|
due them. Tom spoke out, with lively apprehension.
|
|
'We be going to the dogs, 'tis plain. 'Tis meet and necessary that
|
|
we take a smaller house and set the servants at large, sith they be of
|
|
no value but to make delay, and trouble one with offices that harass
|
|
the spirit and shame the soul, they misbecoming any but a doll, that
|
|
hath nor brains nor hands to help itself withal. I remember me of a
|
|
small house that standeth over against the fish-market, by
|
|
Billingsgate-'
|
|
A sharp pressure upon Tom's arm stopped his foolish tongue and
|
|
sent a blush to his face; but no countenance there betrayed any sign
|
|
that this strange speech had been remarked or given concern.
|
|
A secretary made report that forasmuch as the late king had
|
|
provided in his will for conferring the ducal degree upon the Earl
|
|
of Hertford and raising his brother, Sir Thomas Seymour, to the
|
|
peerage, and likewise Hertford's son to an earldom, together similar
|
|
aggrandizements to other great servants of the crown, the council
|
|
had resolved to hold a sitting on the 16th February for the delivering
|
|
and confirming of these honors; and that meantime the late king not
|
|
having granted, in writing, estates suitable to the support of these
|
|
dignities, the council, knowing his private wishes in that regard, had
|
|
thought proper to grant to Seymour '500 pound lands' and to Hertford's
|
|
son '800 pound lands, and 300 pound of the next bishop's lands which
|
|
should fall vacant,'- his present majesty being willing.*(11)
|
|
Tom was about to blurt out something about the propriety of paying
|
|
the late king's debts first before squandering all his money; but a
|
|
timely touch upon his arm, from the thoughtful Hertford, saved him
|
|
this indiscretion; wherefore he gave the royal assent, without
|
|
spoken comment, but with much inward discomfort. While he sat
|
|
reflecting a moment over the ease with which he was doing strange
|
|
and glittering miracles, a happy thought shot into his mind: why not
|
|
make his mother Duchess of Offal Court and give her an estate? But a
|
|
sorrowful thought swept it instantly away; he was only a king in name,
|
|
these grave veterans and great nobles were his masters; to them his
|
|
mother was only the creature of a diseased mind; they would simply
|
|
listen to his project with unbelieving ears, then send for the doctor.
|
|
The dull work went tediously on. Petitions were read, and
|
|
proclamations, patents, and all manner of wordy, repetitious and
|
|
wearisome papers relating to the public business; and at last Tom
|
|
sighed pathetically and murmured to himself, 'In what have I offended,
|
|
that the good God should take me away from the fields and the free air
|
|
and the sunshine, to shut me up here and make me a king and afflict me
|
|
so?' Then his poor muddled head nodded awhile, and presently dropped
|
|
to his shoulder; and the business of the empire came to a standstill
|
|
for want of that august factor, the ratifying power. Silence ensued
|
|
around the slumbering child, and the sages of the realm ceased from
|
|
their deliberations.
|
|
During the forenoon, Tom had an enjoyable hour, by permission of
|
|
his keepers, Hertford and St. John, with the Lady Elizabeth and the
|
|
little Lady Jane Grey; though the spirits of the princesses were
|
|
rather subdued by the mighty stroke that had fallen upon the royal
|
|
house; and at the end of the visit his 'elder sister'- afterward the
|
|
'Bloody Mary' of history- chilled him with a solemn interview which
|
|
had but one merit in his eyes, its brevity. He had a few moments to
|
|
himself, and then a slim lad of about twelve years of age was admitted
|
|
to his presence, whose clothing, except his snowy ruff and the laces
|
|
about his wrists, was of black- doublet, hose and all. He bore no
|
|
badge of mourning but a knot of purple ribbon on his shoulder. He
|
|
advanced hesitatingly, with head bowed and bare, and dropped upon
|
|
one knee in front of Tom. Tom sat still and contemplated him soberly
|
|
for a moment. Then he said:
|
|
'Rise, lad. Who art thou? What wouldst have?'
|
|
The boy rose, and stood at graceful ease, but with an aspect of
|
|
concern in his face. He said:
|
|
'Of a surety thou must remember me, my lord. I am thy
|
|
whipping-boy.
|
|
'My whipping-boy?'
|
|
'The same, your grace, I am Humphrey- Humphrey Marlow.'
|
|
Tom perceived that here was some one whom his keepers ought to
|
|
have posted him about. The situation was delicate. What should he do?-
|
|
pretend he knew this lad, and then betray, by his every utterance,
|
|
that he had never heard of him before? No, that would not do. An
|
|
idea came to his relief: accidents like this might be likely to happen
|
|
with some frequency, now that business urgencies would often call
|
|
Hertford and St. John from his side, they being members of the council
|
|
of executors; therefore perhaps it would be well to strike out a
|
|
plan himself to meet the requirements of such emergencies. Yes, that
|
|
would be a wise course- he would practise on this boy, and see what
|
|
sort of success he might achieve. So he stroked his brow, perplexedly,
|
|
a moment or two, and presently said:
|
|
'Now I seem to remember thee somewhat- but my wit is clogged and
|
|
dim with suffering-'
|
|
'Alack, my poor master!' ejaculated the whipping-boy, with
|
|
feeling; adding, to himself, 'In truth 'tis as they said- his mind
|
|
is gone- alas, poor soul! But misfortune catch me, how am I
|
|
forgetting! they said one must not seem to observe that aught is wrong
|
|
with him.'
|
|
''Tis strange how my memory doth wanton with me these days,'
|
|
said Tom. 'But mind it not- I mend apace- a little clue doth often
|
|
serve to bring me back again the things and names which had escaped
|
|
me. (And not they, only, forsooth, but e'en such as I ne'er heard
|
|
before- as this lad shall see.) Give thy business speech.'
|
|
''Tis matter of small weight, my liege, yet will I touch upon
|
|
it, an it please your grace. Two days gone by, when your majesty
|
|
faulted thrice in your Greek- in the morning lessons- dost remember
|
|
it?'
|
|
'Ye-e-s- methinks I do. (It is not much of a lie- an I had meddled
|
|
with the Greek at all, I had not faulted simply thrice, but forty
|
|
times). Yes, I do recall it now- go on.'
|
|
-'The master, being wroth with what he termed such slovenly and
|
|
doltish work, did promise that he would soundly whip me for it- and-'
|
|
'Whip thee!' said Tom, astonished out of his presence of mind.
|
|
'Why should he whip thee for faults of mine?'
|
|
'Ah, your grace forgetteth again. He always scourgeth me, when
|
|
thou dost fail in thy lessons.'
|
|
'True, true- I had forgot. Thou teachest me in private- then if
|
|
I fail, he argueth that thy office was lamely done, and-'
|
|
'Oh, my liege, what words are these? I, the humblest of thy
|
|
servants, presume to teach thee!'
|
|
'Then where is thy blame? What riddle is this? Am I in truth
|
|
gone mad, or is it thou? Explain- speak out.'
|
|
'But, good your majesty, there's naught that needeth
|
|
simplifying. None may visit the sacred person of the Prince of Wales
|
|
with blows; wherefore when he faulteth, 'tis I that take them; and
|
|
meet it is and right, for that it is mine office and my
|
|
livelihood.'*(12)
|
|
Tom stared at the tranquil boy, observing to himself, 'Lo, it is a
|
|
wonderful thing- a most strange and curious trade; I marvel they
|
|
have not hired a boy to take my combings and my dressings for me-
|
|
would heaven they would!- an they will do this thing, I will take my
|
|
lashings in mine own person, giving thanks to God for the change.'
|
|
Then he said aloud:
|
|
'And hast thou been beaten, poor friend, according to the
|
|
promise?'
|
|
'No, good your majesty, my punishment was appointed for this
|
|
day, and peradventure it may be annulled, as unbefitting the season of
|
|
mourning that is come upon us; I know not, and so have made bold to
|
|
come hither and remind your grace about your gracious promise to
|
|
intercede in my behalf-'
|
|
'With the master? To save thee thy whipping?'
|
|
'Ah, thou dost remember!'
|
|
'My memory mendeth, thou seest. Set thy mind at ease- thy back
|
|
shall go unscathed- I will see to it.'
|
|
'Oh, thanks, my good lord!' cried the boy, dropping upon his
|
|
knee again. 'Mayhap I have ventured far enow; and yet'....
|
|
Seeing Master Humphrey hesitate, Tom encouraged him to go on,
|
|
saying he was 'in the granting mood.'
|
|
'Then will I speak it out, for it lieth near my heart. Sith thou
|
|
art no more Prince of Wales but king, thou canst order matters as thou
|
|
wilt, with none to say thee nay; wherefore it is not in reason that
|
|
thou wilt longer vex thyself with dreary studies, but wilt burn thy
|
|
books and turn thy mind to things less irksome. Then am I ruined,
|
|
and mine orphan sisters with me!'
|
|
'Ruined? Prithee, how?'
|
|
'My back is my bread, O my gracious liege! if it go idle, I
|
|
starve. An thou cease from study, mine office is gone, thou'lt need no
|
|
whipping-boy. Do not turn me away!'
|
|
Tom was touched with this pathetic distress. He said, with a right
|
|
royal burst of generosity:
|
|
'Discomfort thyself no further, lad. Thine office shall be
|
|
permanent in thee and thy line, forever.' Then he struck the boy a
|
|
light blow on the shoulder with the flat of his sword, exclaiming,
|
|
'Rise, Humphrey Marlow, Hereditary Grand Whipping-Boy to the royal
|
|
house of England! Banish sorrow- I will betake me to my books again,
|
|
and study so ill that they must in justice treble thy wage, so
|
|
mightily shall the business of thine office be augmented.'
|
|
The grateful Humphrey responded fervidly:
|
|
'Thanks, oh, most noble master, this princely lavishness doth
|
|
far surpass my most distempered dreams of fortune. Now shall I be
|
|
happy all my days, and all the house of Marlow after me.'
|
|
Tom had wit enough to perceive that here was a lad who could be
|
|
useful to him. He encouraged Humphrey to talk, and he was nothing
|
|
loath. He was delighted to believe that he was helping in Tom's
|
|
'cure'; for always, as soon as he had finished calling back to Tom's
|
|
diseased mind the various particulars of his experiences and
|
|
adventures in the royal schoolroom and elsewhere about the palace,
|
|
he noticed that Tom was then able to 'recall' the circumstances
|
|
quite clearly. At the end of an hour Tom found himself well
|
|
freighted with very valuable information concerning personages and
|
|
matters pertaining to the court; so he resolved to draw instruction
|
|
from this source daily; and to this end he would give order to admit
|
|
Humphrey to the royal closet whenever he might come, provided the
|
|
majesty of England was not engaged with other people.
|
|
Humphrey had hardly been dismissed when my Lord Hertford arrived
|
|
with more trouble for Tom. He said that the lords of the council,
|
|
fearing that some overwrought report of the king's damaged health
|
|
might have leaked out and got abroad, they deemed it wise and best
|
|
that his majesty should begin to dine in public after a day or two-
|
|
his wholesome complexion and vigorous step, assisted by a carefully
|
|
guarded repose of manner and ease and grace of demeanor, would more
|
|
surely quiet the general pulse- in case any evil rumors had gone
|
|
about- than any other scheme that could be devised.
|
|
Then the earl proceeded, very delicately, to instruct Tom as to
|
|
the observances proper to the stately occasion, under the rather
|
|
thin disguise of 'reminding' him concerning things already known to
|
|
him; but to his vast gratification it turned out that Tom needed
|
|
very little help in this line- he had been making use of Humphrey in
|
|
that direction, for Humphrey had mentioned that within a few days he
|
|
was to begin to dine in public; having gathered it from the
|
|
swift-winged gossip of the court. Tom kept these facts to himself,
|
|
however.
|
|
Seeing the royal memory so improved, the earl ventured to apply
|
|
a few tests to it, in an apparently casual way, to find out how far
|
|
its amendment had progressed. The results were happy, here and
|
|
there, in spots- spots where Humphrey's tracks remained- and, on the
|
|
whole, my lord was greatly pleased and encouraged. So encouraged was
|
|
he, indeed, that he spoke up and said in a quite hopeful voice:
|
|
'Now am I persuaded that if your majesty will but tax your
|
|
memory yet a little further, it will resolve the puzzle of the Great
|
|
Seal- a loss which was of moment yesterday, although of none to-day,
|
|
since its term of service ended with our late lord's life. May it
|
|
please your grace to make the trial?'
|
|
Tom was at sea- a Great Seal was a something which he was
|
|
totally unacquainted with. After a moment's hesitation he looked up
|
|
innocently and asked:
|
|
'What was it like, my lord?'
|
|
The earl started, almost imperceptibly, muttering to himself,
|
|
'Alack, his wits are flown again!- it was ill wisdom to lead him on to
|
|
strain them-' then he deftly turned the talk to other matters, with
|
|
the purpose of sweeping the unlucky Seal out of Tom's thoughts- a
|
|
purpose which easily succeeded.
|
|
CHAPTER XV
|
|
Tom as King
|
|
|
|
THE next day the foreign ambassadors came, with their gorgeous
|
|
trains; and Tom, throned in awful state, received them. The
|
|
splendors of the scene delighted his eye and fired his imagination
|
|
at first, but the audience was long and dreary, and so were most of
|
|
the addresses- wherefore, what began as a pleasure, grew into
|
|
weariness and homesickness by and by. Tom said the words which
|
|
Hertford put into his mouth from time to time, and tried hard to
|
|
acquit himself satisfactorily, but he was too new to such things,
|
|
and too ill at ease to accomplish more than a tolerable success. He
|
|
looked sufficiently like a king, but he was ill able to feel like one.
|
|
He was cordially glad when the ceremony was ended.
|
|
The larger part of his day was 'wasted'- as he termed it, in his
|
|
own mind- in labors pertaining to his royal office. Even the two hours
|
|
devoted to certain princely pastimes and recreations were rather a
|
|
burden to him than otherwise, they were so fettered by restrictions
|
|
and ceremonious observances. However, he had a private hour with his
|
|
whipping-boy which he counted clear gain, since he got both
|
|
entertainment and needful information out of it.
|
|
The third day of Tom Canty's kingship came and went much as the
|
|
others had done, but there was a lifting of his cloud in one way- he
|
|
felt less uncomfortable than at first; he was getting a little used to
|
|
his circumstances and surroundings; his chains still galled, but not
|
|
all the time; he found that the presence and homage of the great
|
|
afflicted and embarrassed him less and less sharply with every hour
|
|
that drifted over his head.
|
|
But for one single dread, he could have seen the fourth day
|
|
approach without serious distress- the dining in public; it was to
|
|
begin that day. There were greater matters in the program- for on that
|
|
day he would have to preside at a council which would take his views
|
|
and commands concerning the policy to be pursued toward various
|
|
foreign nations scattered far and near over the great globe; on that
|
|
day, too, Hertford would be formally chosen to the grand office of
|
|
Lord Protector; other things of note were appointed for that fourth
|
|
day also, but to Tom they were all insignificant compared with the
|
|
ordeal of dining all by himself with a multitude of curious eyes
|
|
fastened upon him and a multitude of mouths whispering comments upon
|
|
his performance- and upon his mistakes, if he should be so unlucky
|
|
as to make any.
|
|
Still, nothing could stop that fourth day, and so it came. It
|
|
found poor Tom low-spirited and absent-minded, and this mood
|
|
continued; he could not shake it off. The ordinary duties of the
|
|
morning dragged upon his hands, and wearied him. Once more he felt the
|
|
sense of captivity heavy upon him.
|
|
Late in the forenoon he was in a large audience chamber,
|
|
conversing with the Earl of Hertford and duly awaiting the striking of
|
|
the hour appointed for a visit of ceremony from a considerable
|
|
number of great officials and courtiers.
|
|
After a little while Tom, who had wandered to a window and
|
|
become interested in the life and movement of the great highway beyond
|
|
the palace gates- and not idly interested, but longing with all his
|
|
heart to take part in person in its stir and freedom- saw the van of a
|
|
hooting and shouting mob of disorderly men, women, and children of the
|
|
lowest and poorest degree approaching from up the road.
|
|
'I would I knew what 'tis about!' he exclaimed, with all a boy's
|
|
curiosity in such happenings.
|
|
'Thou art the king!' solemnly responded the earl, with a
|
|
reverence. 'Have I your grace's leave to act?'
|
|
'Oh, blithely, yes! Oh, gladly, yes!' exclaimed Tom, excitedly,
|
|
adding to himself with a lively sense of satisfaction, 'In truth,
|
|
being a king is not all dreariness- it hath its compensations and
|
|
conveniences.'
|
|
The earl called a page, and sent him to the captain of the guard
|
|
with the order:
|
|
'Let the mob be halted, and inquiry made concerning, the
|
|
occasion of its movement. By the king's command!'
|
|
A few seconds later a long rank of the royal guards, cased in
|
|
flashing steel, filed out at the gates and formed across the highway
|
|
in front of the multitude. A messenger returned, to report that the
|
|
crowd were following a man, a woman, and a young girl to execution for
|
|
crimes committed against the peace and dignity of the realm.
|
|
Death- and a violent death- for these poor unfortunates! The
|
|
thought wrung Tom's heartstrings. The spirit of compassion took
|
|
control of him, to the exclusion of all other considerations; he never
|
|
thought of the offended laws, or of the grief or loss which these
|
|
three criminals had inflicted upon their victims, he could think of
|
|
nothing but the scaffold and the grisly fate hanging over the heads of
|
|
the condemned. His concern made him even forget, for the moment,
|
|
that he was but the false shadow of a king, not the substance; and
|
|
before he knew it he had blurted out the command:
|
|
'Bring them here!'
|
|
Then he blushed scarlet, and a sort of apology sprung to his lips;
|
|
but observing that his order had wrought no sort of surprise in the
|
|
earl or the waiting page, he suppressed the words he was about to
|
|
utter. The page, in the most matter-of-course way, made a profound
|
|
obeisance and retired backward out of the room to deliver the command.
|
|
Tom experienced a glow of pride and a renewed sense of the
|
|
compensating advantages of the kingly office. He said to himself,
|
|
'Truly it is like what I used to feel when I read the old priest's
|
|
tales, and did imagine mine own self a prince, giving law and
|
|
command to all, saying, " Do this, do that," while none durst offer
|
|
let or hindrance to my will.'
|
|
Now the doors swung open; one high-sounding title after another
|
|
was announced, the personages owning them followed, and the place
|
|
was quickly half filled with noble folk and finery. But Tom was hardly
|
|
conscious of the presence of these people, so wrought up was he and so
|
|
intensely absorbed in that other and more interesting matter. He
|
|
seated himself, absently, in his chair of state, and turned his eyes
|
|
upon the door with manifestations of impatient expectancy; seeing
|
|
which, the company forbore to trouble him, and fell to chatting a
|
|
mixture of public business and court gossip one with another.
|
|
In a little while the measured tread of military men was heard
|
|
approaching, and the culprits entered the presence in charge of an
|
|
under-sheriff and escorted by a detail of the king's guard. The
|
|
civil officer knelt before Tom, then stood aside; the three doomed
|
|
persons knelt also, and remained so; the guard took position behind
|
|
Tom's chair. Tom scanned the prisoners curiously. Something about
|
|
the dress or appearance of the man had stirred a vague memory in
|
|
him. 'Methinks I have seen this man ere now... but the when or the
|
|
where fail me'- such was Tom's thought. Just then the man glanced
|
|
quickly up, and quickly dropped his face again, not being able to
|
|
endure the awful port of sovereignty; but the one full glimpse of
|
|
the face, which Tom got, was sufficient. He said to himself: 'Now is
|
|
the matter clear; this is the stranger that plucked Giles Witt out
|
|
of the Thames, and saved his life that windy, bitter first day of
|
|
the New Year- a brave, good deed- pity he hath been doing baser ones
|
|
and got himself in this sad case... I have not forgot the day, neither
|
|
the hour; by reason that an hour after, upon the stroke of eleven, I
|
|
did get a hiding by the hand of Gammer Canty which was of so goodly
|
|
and admired severity that all that went before or followed after it
|
|
were but fondlings and caresses by comparison.'
|
|
Tom now ordered that the woman and the girl be removed from the
|
|
presence for a little time; then addressed himself to the
|
|
under-sheriff, saying:
|
|
'Good sir, what is this man's offense?'
|
|
The officer knelt, and answered:
|
|
'So please your majesty, he hath taken the life of a subject by
|
|
poison.'
|
|
Tom's compassion for the prisoner, and admiration of him as the
|
|
daring rescuer of a drowning boy, experienced a most damaging shock.
|
|
'The thing was proven upon him?' he asked.
|
|
'Most clearly, sire.'
|
|
Tom sighed, and said:
|
|
'Take him away- he hath earned his death. 'Tis a pity, for he
|
|
was a brave heart- na- na, I mean he hath the look of it!'
|
|
The prisoner clasped his hands together with sudden energy, and
|
|
wrung them despairingly, at the same time appealing imploringly to the
|
|
'king' in broken and terrified phrases:
|
|
'Oh, my lord the king, an thou canst pity the lost, have pity upon
|
|
me! I am innocent- neither hath that wherewith I am charged been
|
|
more than but lamely proved- yet I speak not of that; the judgment
|
|
is gone forth against me and may not suffer alteration; yet in mine
|
|
extremity I beg a boon, for my doom is more than I can bear. A
|
|
grace, a grace, my lord the king! in thy royal compassion grant my
|
|
prayer- give commandment that I be hanged!'
|
|
Tom was amazed. This was not the outcome he had looked for.
|
|
'Odds my life, a strange boon! Was it not the fate intended thee?'
|
|
'Oh, good my liege, not so! It is ordered that I be boiled alive!'
|
|
The hideous surprise of these words almost made Tom spring from
|
|
his chair. As soon as he could recover his wits he cried out:
|
|
'Have thy wish, poor soul! an thou had poisoned a hundred men thou
|
|
shouldst not suffer so miserable a death.'
|
|
The prisoner bowed his face to the ground and burst into
|
|
passionate expressions of gratitude- ending with:
|
|
'If ever thou shouldst know misfortune- which God forbid!- may thy
|
|
goodness to me this day be remembered and requited!'
|
|
Tom turned to the Earl of Hertford, and said:
|
|
'My lord, is it believable that there was warrant for this man's
|
|
ferocious doom?'
|
|
'It is the law, your grace- for poisoners. In Germany coiners be
|
|
boiled to death in oil- not cast in of a sudden, but by a rope let
|
|
down into the oil by degrees, and slowly; first the feet, then the
|
|
legs, then-'
|
|
'Oh, prithee, no more, my lord, I cannot bear it!' cried Tom,
|
|
covering his eyes with his hands to shut out the picture. 'I beseech
|
|
your good lordship that order be taken to change this law- oh, let
|
|
no more poor creatures be visited with its tortures.'
|
|
The earl's face showed profound ratification, for he was a man
|
|
of merciful and generous impulses- a thing not very common with his
|
|
class in that fierce age.
|
|
He said:
|
|
'These your grace's noble words have sealed its doom. History will
|
|
remember it to the honor of your royal house.'
|
|
The under-sheriff was about to remove his prisoner; Tom gave him a
|
|
sign to wait; then he said:
|
|
'Good sir, I would look into this matter further. The man has said
|
|
his deed was but lamely proved. Tell me what thou knowest.'
|
|
'If the king's grace please, it did appear upon the trial, that
|
|
this man entered into a house in the hamlet of Islington where one lay
|
|
sick- three witnesses say it was at ten of the clock in the morning
|
|
and two say it was some minutes later- the sick man being alone at the
|
|
time, and sleeping- and presently the man came forth again, and went
|
|
his way. The sick man died within the hour, being torn with spasm
|
|
and retchings.'
|
|
'Did any see the poison given? Was poison found?'
|
|
'Marry, no, my liege.'
|
|
'Then how doth one know there was poison given at all?'
|
|
'Please your majesty, the doctors testified that none die with
|
|
such symptoms but by poison.'
|
|
Weighty evidence, this- in that simple age. Tom recognized its
|
|
formidable nature, and said:
|
|
'The doctor knoweth his trade- belike they were right. The
|
|
matter hath an ill look for this poor man.'
|
|
'Yet was not this all, your majesty; there is more and worse. Many
|
|
testified that a witch, since gone from the village, none know
|
|
whither, did foretell, and speak it privately in their ears, that
|
|
the sick man would die by poison- and more, that a stranger would give
|
|
it- a stranger with brown hair and clothed in a worn and common
|
|
garb; and surely this prisoner doth answer woundily to the bill.
|
|
Please, your majesty, to give the circumstance that solemn weight
|
|
which is its due, seeing it was foretold.'
|
|
This was an argument of tremendous force, in that superstitious
|
|
day. Tom felt that the thing was settled; if evidence was worth
|
|
anything, this poor fellow's guilt was proved. Still he offered the
|
|
prisoner a chance, saying:
|
|
'If thou canst say aught in thy behalf, speak.'
|
|
'Naught that will avail, my king. I am innocent, yet cannot I make
|
|
it appear. I have no friends, else might I show that I was not in
|
|
Islington that day; so also might I show that at that hour they name I
|
|
was above a league away, seeing I was at Wapping Old Stairs; yea more,
|
|
my king, for I could show, that while they say I was taking life, I
|
|
was saving it. A drowning boy-'
|
|
'Peace! Sheriff, name the day the deed was done!'
|
|
'At ten in the morning, or some minutes later, the first day of
|
|
the new year, most illustrious-'
|
|
'Let the prisoner go free- it is the king's will!'
|
|
Another blush followed this unregal outburst, and he covered his
|
|
indecorum as well as he could by adding:
|
|
'It enrageth me that a man should be hanged upon such idle,
|
|
hare-brained evidence!'
|
|
A low buzz of admiration swept through the assemblage. It was
|
|
not admiration of the decree that had been delivered by Tom, for the
|
|
propriety or expediency of pardoning a convicted poisoner was a
|
|
thing which few there would have felt justified in either admitting or
|
|
admiring- no, the admiration was for the intelligence and spirit which
|
|
Tom had displayed. Some of the low-voiced remarks were to this effect:
|
|
'This is no mad king- he hath his wits sound.'
|
|
'How sanely he put his questions- how like his former natural self
|
|
was this abrupt, imperious disposal of the matter!'
|
|
'God be thanked his infirmity is spent! This is no weakling, but a
|
|
king. He hath borne himself like to his own father.'
|
|
The air being filled with applause, Tom's ear necessarily caught a
|
|
little of it. The effect which this had upon him was to put him
|
|
greatly at his ease, and also to charge his system with very
|
|
gratifying sensations.
|
|
However, his juvenile curiosity soon rose superior to these
|
|
pleasant thoughts and feelings; he was eager to know what sort of
|
|
deadly mischief the woman and the little girl could have been about;
|
|
so, by his command the two terrified and sobbing creatures were
|
|
brought before him.
|
|
'What is it that these have done?' he inquired of the sheriff.
|
|
'Please your majesty, a black crime is charged upon them, and
|
|
clearly proven; wherefore the judges have decreed, according to the
|
|
law, that they be hanged. They sold themselves to the devil- such is
|
|
their crime.'
|
|
Tom shuddered. He had been taught to abhor people who did this
|
|
wicked thing. Still, he was not going to deny himself the pleasure
|
|
of feeding his curiosity, for all that; so he asked:
|
|
'Where was this done?- and when?'
|
|
'On a midnight, in December- in a ruined church, your majesty.'
|
|
Tom shuddered again. 'Who was there present?'
|
|
'Only these two, your grace- and that other.'
|
|
'Have these confessed?'
|
|
'Nay, not so, sire- they do deny it.'
|
|
'Then, prithee, how was it known?'
|
|
'Certain witnesses did see them wending thither, good your
|
|
majesty; this bred the suspicion, and dire effects have since
|
|
confirmed and justified it. In particular, it is in evidence that
|
|
through the wicked power so obtained, they did invoke and bring
|
|
about a storm that wasted all the region round about. Above forty
|
|
witnesses have proved the storm; and sooth one might have had a
|
|
thousand, for all had reason to remember it, sith all had suffered
|
|
by it.'
|
|
'Certes this is a serious matter.' Tom turned this dark piece of
|
|
scoundrelism over in his mind awhile, then asked:
|
|
'Suffered the woman, also, by the storm?'
|
|
Several old heads among the assemblage nodded their recognition of
|
|
the wisdom of this question. The sheriff, however, saw nothing
|
|
consequential in the inquiry; he answered, with simple directness.
|
|
'Indeed, she did, your majesty, and most righteously, as all aver.
|
|
Her habitation was swept away, and herself and child left
|
|
shelterless.'
|
|
'Methinks the power to do herself so ill a turn was dearly bought.
|
|
She had been cheated, had she paid but a farthing for it; that she
|
|
paid her soul, and her child's, argueth that she is mad; if she is mad
|
|
she knoweth not what she doth, therefore sinneth not.'
|
|
The elderly heads nodded recognition of Tom's wisdom once more,
|
|
and one individual murmured, 'An the king be mad himself, according to
|
|
report, then it is a madness of a sort that would improve the sanity
|
|
of some I wot of, if by the gentle providence of God they could but
|
|
catch it.'
|
|
'What age hath the child?' asked Tom.
|
|
'Nine years, please your majesty.'
|
|
'By the law of England may a child enter into covenant and sell
|
|
itself, my lord?' asked Tom, turning to a learned judge.
|
|
'The law doth not permit a child to make or meddle in any
|
|
weighty matter, good my liege, holding that its callow wit unfitteth
|
|
it to cope with the riper wit and evil schemings of them that are
|
|
its elders. The devil may buy a child, if he so choose, and the
|
|
child agree thereto, but not an Englishman- in this latter case the
|
|
contract would be null and void.'
|
|
'It seemeth a rude unchristian thing, and ill contrived, that
|
|
English law denieth privileges to Englishmen, to waste them on the
|
|
devil!' cried Tom, with honest heat.
|
|
This novel view of the matter excited many smiles, and was
|
|
stored away in many heads to be repeated about the court as evidence
|
|
of Tom's originality as well as progress toward mental health.
|
|
The elder culprit had ceased from sobbing, and was hanging upon
|
|
Tom's words with an excited interest and a growing hope. Tom noticed
|
|
this, and it strongly inclined his sympathies toward her in her
|
|
perilous and unfriended situation. Presently he asked:
|
|
'How wrought they, to bring the storm?'
|
|
'By pulling off their stockings, sire.'
|
|
This astonished Tom, and also fired his curiosity to fever heat.
|
|
He said eagerly:
|
|
'It is wonderful! Hath it always this dread effect?'
|
|
'Always, my liege- at least if the woman desire it, and utter
|
|
the needful words, either in her mind or with her tongue.'
|
|
Tom turned to the woman, and said with impetuous zeal:
|
|
'Exert thy power- I would see a storm.'
|
|
There was a sudden paling of cheeks in the superstitious
|
|
assemblage, and a general, though unexpressed, desire to get out of
|
|
the place- all of which was lost upon Tom, who was dead to
|
|
everything but the proposed cataclysm. Seeing a puzzled and astonished
|
|
look in the woman's face, he added, excitedly:
|
|
'Never fear- thou shalt be blameless. More- thou shalt go free-
|
|
none shall touch thee. Exert thy power.'
|
|
'O, my lord the king, I have it not- I have been falsely accused.'
|
|
'Thy fears stay thee. Be of good heart, thou shalt suffer no harm.
|
|
Make a storm- it mattereth not how small a one- I require naught great
|
|
or harmful, but indeed prefer the opposite- do this and thy life is
|
|
spared- thou shalt go out free, with thy child, bearing the king's
|
|
pardon, and safe from hurt or malice from any in the realm.'
|
|
The woman prostrated herself, and protested, with tears, that
|
|
she had no power to do the miracle, else she would gladly win her
|
|
child's life alone, and be content to lose her own, if by obedience to
|
|
the king's command so precious a grace might be acquired.
|
|
Tom urged- the woman still adhered to her declarations. Finally,
|
|
he said:
|
|
'I think the woman hath said true. An my mother were in her
|
|
place and gifted with the devil's functions, she had not stayed a
|
|
moment to call her storms and lay the whole land in ruins, if the
|
|
saving of my forfeit life were the price she got! It is argument
|
|
that other mothers are made in like mold. Thou art free, good wife-
|
|
thou and thy child- for I do think thee innocent. Now thou'st naught
|
|
to fear, being pardoned- pull off thy stockings!- an thou canst make
|
|
me a storm, thou shalt be rich!'
|
|
The redeemed creature was loud in her gratitude, and proceeded
|
|
to obey, while Tom looked on with eager expectancy, a little marred by
|
|
apprehension; the courtiers at the same time manifesting decided
|
|
discomfort and uneasiness. The woman stripped her own feet and her
|
|
little girl's also, and plainly did her best to reward the king's
|
|
generosity with an earthquake, but it was all a failure and a
|
|
disappointment. Tom sighed and said:
|
|
'There, good soul, trouble thyself no further, thy power is
|
|
departed out of thee. Go thy way in peace; and if it return to thee at
|
|
any time, forget me not, but fetch me a storm.'*(13)
|
|
CHAPTER XVI
|
|
The State Dinner
|
|
|
|
THE dinner-hour drew near- yet, strangely enough, the thought
|
|
brought but slight discomfort to Tom, and hardly any terror. The
|
|
morning's experiences had wonderfully built up his confidence; the
|
|
poor little ash-cat was already more wonted to his strange garret,
|
|
after four days' habit, than a mature person could have become in a
|
|
full month. A child's facility in accommodating itself to
|
|
circumstances was never more strikingly illustrated.
|
|
Let us privileged ones hurry to the great banqueting-room and have
|
|
a glance at matters there while Tom is being made ready for the
|
|
imposing occasion. It is a spacious apartment, with gilded pillars and
|
|
pilasters, and pictured walls and ceilings. At the door stand tall
|
|
guards, as rigid as statues, dressed in rich and picturesque costumes,
|
|
and bearing halberds. In a high gallery which runs all around the
|
|
place is a band of musicians and a packed company of citizens of
|
|
both sexes, in brilliant attire. In the center of the room, upon a
|
|
raised platform, is Tom's table. Now let the ancient chronicler speak:
|
|
'A gentleman enters the room bearing a rod, and along with him
|
|
another bearing a table-cloth, which, after they have both kneeled
|
|
three times with the utmost veneration, he spreads upon the table, and
|
|
after kneeling again they both retire; then come two others, one
|
|
with the rod again, the other with a salt-cellar, a plate, and
|
|
bread; when they have kneeled as the others had done, and placed
|
|
what was brought upon the table, they too retire with the same
|
|
ceremonies performed by the first; at last come two nobles richly
|
|
clothed, one bearing a tasting-knife, who, after prostrating
|
|
themselves in the most graceful manner, approach and rub the table
|
|
with bread and salt, with as much awe as if the king had been
|
|
present.'*(14)
|
|
So end the solemn preliminaries. Now, far down the echoing
|
|
corridors we hear a bugle-blast, and the indistinct cry, 'Place for
|
|
the king! way for the king's most excellent majesty!' These sounds are
|
|
momently repeated- they grow nearer and nearer- and presently,
|
|
almost in our faces, the martial note peals and the cry rings out,
|
|
'Way for the king!' At this instant the shining pageant appears, and
|
|
files in at the door, with a measured march. Let the chronicler
|
|
speak again:
|
|
'First come Gentlemen, Barons, Earls, Knights of the Garter, all
|
|
richly dressed and bareheaded; next comes the Chancellor, between two,
|
|
one of which carries the royal scepter, the other the Sword of State
|
|
in a red scabbard, studded with golden fleurs-de-lis, the point
|
|
upwards; next comes the King himself- whom, upon his appearing, twelve
|
|
trumpets and many drums salute with a great burst of welcome, whilst
|
|
all in the galleries rise in their places, crying "God save the King!"
|
|
After him come nobles attached to his person, and on his right and
|
|
left march his guard of honor, his fifty Gentlemen Pensioners, with
|
|
gilt battle-axes.'
|
|
This was all fine and pleasant. Tom's pulse beat high and a glad
|
|
light was in his eye. He bore himself right gracefully, and all the
|
|
more so because he was not thinking of how he was doing it, his mind
|
|
being charmed and occupied with the blithe sights and sounds about
|
|
him- and besides, nobody can be very ungraceful in nicely fitting
|
|
beautiful clothes after he has grown a little used to them- especially
|
|
if he is for the moment unconscious of them. Tom remembered his
|
|
instructions, and acknowledged his greeting with a slight
|
|
inclination of his plumed head, and a courteous 'I thank ye, my good
|
|
people.'
|
|
He seated himself at table without removing his cap; and did it
|
|
without the least embarrassment; for to eat with one's cap on was
|
|
the one solitary royal custom upon which the kings and the Cantys
|
|
met upon common ground, neither party having any advantage over the
|
|
other in the matter of old familiarity with it. The pageant broke up
|
|
and grouped itself picturesquely, and remained bareheaded.
|
|
Now, to the sound of gay music, the Yeomen of the Guard entered-
|
|
'the tallest and mightiest men in England, they being selected in this
|
|
regard'- but we will let the chronicler tell about it:
|
|
'The Yeomen of the Guard entered bareheaded, clothed in scarlet,
|
|
with golden roses upon their backs; and these went and came,
|
|
bringing in each turn a course of dishes, served in plate. These
|
|
dishes were received by a gentleman in the same order they were
|
|
brought, and placed upon the table, while the taster gave to each
|
|
guard a mouthful to eat of the particular dish he had brought, for
|
|
fear of any poison.'
|
|
Tom made a good dinner, notwithstanding he was conscious that
|
|
hundreds of eyes followed each morsel to his mouth and watched him eat
|
|
it with an interest which could not have been more intense if it had
|
|
been a deadly explosive and was expected to blow him up and scatter
|
|
him all over the place. He was careful not to hurry, and equally
|
|
careful not to do anything whatever for himself, but wait till the
|
|
proper official knelt down and did it for him. He got through
|
|
without a mistake- flawless and precious triumph.
|
|
When the meal was over at last and he marched away in the midst of
|
|
his bright pageant, with the happy noises in his ears of blaring
|
|
bugles, rolling drums, and thundering acclamations, he felt that if he
|
|
had seen the worst of dining in public, it was an ordeal which he
|
|
would be glad to endure several times a day if by that means he
|
|
could but buy himself free from some of the more formidable
|
|
requirements of his royal office.
|
|
CHAPTER XVII
|
|
Foo-foo the First
|
|
|
|
MILES Hendon hurried along toward the Southwark end of the bridge,
|
|
keeping a sharp lookout for the persons he sought, and hoping and
|
|
expecting to overtake them presently. He was disappointed in this,
|
|
however. By asking questions, he was enabled to track them part of the
|
|
way through Southwark; then all traces ceased, and he was perplexed as
|
|
to how to proceed. Still, he continued his efforts as best he could
|
|
during the rest of the day. Nightfall found him leg-weary, half
|
|
famished, and his desire as far from accomplishment as ever; so he
|
|
supped at the Tabard inn and went to bed, resolved to make an early
|
|
start in the morning, and give the town an exhaustive search. As he
|
|
lay thinking and planning, he presently began to reason thus: The
|
|
boy would escape from the ruffian, his reputed father, if possible;
|
|
would he go back to London and seek his former haunts? No, he would
|
|
not do that, he would avoid recapture. What, then, would he do?
|
|
Never having had a friend in the world, or a protector, until he met
|
|
Miles Hendon, he would naturally try to find that friend again,
|
|
provided the effort did not require him to go toward London and
|
|
danger. He would strike for Hendon Hall, that is what he would do, for
|
|
he knew Hendon was homeward bound, and there he might expect to find
|
|
him. Yes, the case was plain to Hendon- he must lose no more time in
|
|
Southwark, but move at once through Kent, toward Monk's Holm,
|
|
searching the wood and inquiring as he went. Let us return to the
|
|
vanished little king now.
|
|
The ruffian, whom the waiter at the inn on the bridge saw 'about
|
|
to join' the youth and the king, did not exactly join them, but fell
|
|
in close behind them and followed their steps. He said nothing. His
|
|
left arm was in a sling, and he wore a large green patch over his left
|
|
eye; he limped slightly, and used an oaken staff as a support. The
|
|
youth led the king a crooked course through Southwark, and by and by
|
|
struck into the highroad beyond. The king was irritated now, and
|
|
said he would stop here- it was Hendon's place to come to him, not his
|
|
to go to Hendon. He would not endure such insolence; he would stop
|
|
where he was. The youth said:
|
|
'Thou'lt tarry here, and thy friend lying wounded in the wood
|
|
yonder? So be it, then.'
|
|
The king's manner changed at once. He cried out:
|
|
'Wounded? And who hath dared to do it? But that is apart; lead on,
|
|
lead on! Faster, sirrah! art shod with lead? Wounded, is he? Now
|
|
though the doer of it be a duke's son, he shall rue it!'
|
|
It was some distance to the wood, but the space was speedily
|
|
traversed. The youth looked about him, discovered a bough sticking
|
|
in the ground, with a small bit of rag tied to it, then led the way
|
|
into the forest, watching for similar boughs and finding them at
|
|
intervals; they were evidently guides to the point he was aiming at.
|
|
By and by an open place was reached, where were the charred remains of
|
|
a farmhouse, and near them a barn which was falling to ruin and decay.
|
|
There was no sign of life anywhere, and utter silence prevailed. The
|
|
youth entered the barn, the king following eagerly upon his heels.
|
|
No one there! The king shot a surprised and suspicious glance at the
|
|
youth, and asked:
|
|
'Where is he?'
|
|
A mocking laugh was his answer. The king was in a rage in a
|
|
moment; he seized a billet of wood and was in the act of charging upon
|
|
the youth when another mocking laugh fell upon his ear. It was from
|
|
the lame ruffian, who had been following at a distance. The king
|
|
turned and said angrily:
|
|
'Who art thou? What is thy business here?'
|
|
'Leave thy foolery,' said the man, 'and quiet thyself. My disguise
|
|
is none so good that thou canst pretend thou knowest not thy father
|
|
through it.'
|
|
'Thou art not my father. I know thee not. I am the king. If thou
|
|
hast hid my servant, find him for me, or thou shalt sup sorrow for
|
|
what thou hast done.'
|
|
John Canty replied, in a stern and measured voice:
|
|
'It is plain thou art mad, and I am loath to punish thee; but if
|
|
thou provoke me, I must. Thy prating doth no harm here, where there
|
|
are no ears that need to mind thy follies, yet is it well to
|
|
practise thy tongue to wary speech, that it may do no hurt when our
|
|
quarters change. I have done a murder, and may not tarry at home-
|
|
neither shalt thou, seeing I need thy service. My name is changed, for
|
|
wise reasons; it is Hobbs- John Hobbs; thine is Jack- charge thy
|
|
memory accordingly. Now, then, speak. Where is thy mother? Where are
|
|
thy sisters? They came not to the place appointed- knowest thou
|
|
whither they went?'
|
|
The king answered, sullenly:
|
|
'Trouble me not with these riddles. My mother is dead; my
|
|
sisters are in the palace.'
|
|
The youth near by burst into a derisive laugh, and the king
|
|
would have assaulted him, but Canty- or Hobbs, as he now called
|
|
himself- prevented him, and said:
|
|
'Peace, Hugo, vex him not; his mind is astray, and thy ways fret
|
|
him. Sit thee down, Jack, and quiet thyself; thou shalt have a
|
|
morsel to eat, anon.'
|
|
Hobbs and Hugo fell to talking together, in low voices, and the
|
|
king removed himself as far as he could from their disagreeable
|
|
company. He withdrew into the twilight of the farther end of the barn,
|
|
where he found the earthen floor bedded a foot deep with straw. He lay
|
|
down here, drew straw over himself in lieu of blankets, and was soon
|
|
absorbed in thinking. He had many griefs, but the minor ones were
|
|
swept almost into forgetfulness by the supreme one, the loss of his
|
|
father. To the rest of the world the name of Henry VIII brought a
|
|
shiver, and suggested an ogre whose nostrils breathed destruction
|
|
and whose hand dealt scourgings and death; but to this boy the name
|
|
brought only sensations of pleasure, the figure it invoked wore a
|
|
countenance that was all gentleness and affection. He called to mind a
|
|
long succession of loving passages between his father and himself, and
|
|
dwelt fondly upon them, his unstinted tears attesting how deep and
|
|
real was the grief that possessed his heart. As the afternoon wasted
|
|
away, the lad, wearied with his troubles, sunk gradually into a
|
|
tranquil and healing slumber.
|
|
After a considerable time- he could not tell how long- his
|
|
senses struggled to a half-consciousness, and as he lay with closed
|
|
eyes vaguely wondering where he was and what had been happening, he
|
|
noted a murmurous sound, the sullen beating of rain upon the roof. A
|
|
snug sense of comfort stole over him, which was rudely broken, the
|
|
next moment, by a chorus of piping cackles and coarse laughter. It
|
|
startled him disagreeably, and he unmuffled his head to see whence
|
|
this interruption proceeded. A grim and unsightly picture met his eye.
|
|
A bright fire was burning in the middle of the floor, at the other end
|
|
of the barn; and around it, and lit weirdly up by the red glare,
|
|
lolled and sprawled the motliest company of tattered gutter-scum and
|
|
ruffians, of both sexes, he had ever read or dreamed of. There were
|
|
huge, stalwart men, brown with exposure, long-haired, and clothed in
|
|
fantastic rags; there were middle-sized youths, of truculent
|
|
countenance, and similarly clad; there were blind medicants, with
|
|
patched or bandaged eyes; crippled ones, with wooden legs and
|
|
crutches; there was a villain-looking peddler with his pack; a
|
|
knife-grinder, a tinker, and a barber-surgeon, with the implements
|
|
of their trades; some of the females were hardly grown girls, some
|
|
were at prime, some were old and wrinkled hags, and all were loud,
|
|
brazen, foul-mouthed; and all soiled and slatternly; there were
|
|
three sore-faced babies; there were a couple of starveling curs,
|
|
with strings around their necks, whose office was to lead the blind.
|
|
The night was come, the gang had just finished feasting, an orgy
|
|
was beginning, the can of liquor was passing from mouth to mouth. A
|
|
general cry broke forth:
|
|
'A song! a song from the Bat and Dick Dot-and-go-One!'
|
|
One of the blind men got up, and made ready by casting aside the
|
|
patches that sheltered his excellent eyes, and the pathetic placard
|
|
which recited the cause of his calamity. Dot-and-go-One
|
|
disencumbered himself of his timber leg and took his place, upon sound
|
|
and healthy limbs, beside his fellow-rascal; then they roared out a
|
|
rollicking ditty, and were reinforced by the whole crew, at the end of
|
|
each stanza, in a rousing chorus. By the time the last stanza was
|
|
reached, the half-drunken enthusiasm had risen to such a pitch that
|
|
everybody joined in and sang it clear through from the beginning,
|
|
producing a volume of villainous sound that made the rafters quake.
|
|
These were the inspiring words:
|
|
|
|
'Bien Darkmans then, Bouse Mort and Ken,
|
|
The bien Coves bings awast,
|
|
On Chates to trine by Rome Coves dine
|
|
For his long lib at last.
|
|
Bing'd out bien Morts and toure, and toure,
|
|
Bing out of the Rome vile bine,
|
|
And toure the Cove that cloy'd your duds,
|
|
Upon upon the Chates to trine.'*(15)
|
|
|
|
Conversation followed; not in the thieves' dialect of the song,
|
|
for that was only used in talk when unfriendly ears might be
|
|
listening. In the course of it it appeared that 'John Hobbs' was not
|
|
altogether a new recruit, but had trained in the gang at some former
|
|
time. His later history was called for, and when he said he had
|
|
'accidentally' killed a man, considerable satisfaction was
|
|
expressed; when he added that the man was a priest, he was roundly
|
|
applauded, and had to take a drink with everybody. Old acquaintances
|
|
welcomed him joyously, and new ones were proud to shake him by the
|
|
hand. He was asked why he had 'tarried away so many months.' He
|
|
answered:
|
|
'London is better than the country, and safer these late years,
|
|
the laws be so bitter and so diligently enforced. An I had not had
|
|
that accident, I had stayed there. I had resolved to stay, and
|
|
nevermore venture countrywards- but the accident had ended that.'
|
|
He inquired how many persons the gang numbered now. The 'Ruffler,'
|
|
or chief, answered:
|
|
'Five and twenty sturdy budges, bulks, files, clapperdogeons and
|
|
maunders, counting the dells and doxies and other morts.*(16) Most are
|
|
here, the rest are wandering eastward, along the winter lay. We follow
|
|
at dawn.'
|
|
'I do not see the Wen among the honest folk about me. Where may he
|
|
be?'
|
|
'Poor lad, his diet is brimstone now, and over hot for a
|
|
delicate taste. He was killed in a brawl, somewhere about midsummer.'
|
|
'I sorrow to hear that; the Wen was a capable man, and brave.'
|
|
'That was he, truly. Black Bess, his dell, is of us yet, but
|
|
absent on the eastward tramp; a fine lass, of nice ways and orderly
|
|
conduct, none ever seeing her drunk above four days in the seven.'
|
|
'She was ever strict- I remember it well- a goodly wench and
|
|
worthy all commendation. Her mother was more free and less particular;
|
|
a troublesome and ugly-tempered beldame, but furnished with a wit
|
|
above the common.'
|
|
'We lost her through it. Her gift of palmistry and other sorts
|
|
of fortune-telling begot for her at last a witch's name and fame.
|
|
The law roasted her to death at a slow fire. It did touch me to a sort
|
|
of tenderness to see the gallant way she met her lot- cursing and
|
|
reviling all the crowd that gaped and gazed around her, whilst the
|
|
flames licked upward toward her face and catched her thin locks and
|
|
crackled about her old gray head- cursing them, said I?- cursing them!
|
|
why an thou shouldst live a thousand years thou'dst never hear so
|
|
masterful a cursing. Alack, her art died with her. There be base and
|
|
weakling imitations left, but no true blasphemy.'
|
|
The Ruffler sighed; the listeners sighed in sympathy; a general
|
|
depression fell upon the company for a moment, for even hardened
|
|
outcasts like these are not wholly dead to sentiment, but are able
|
|
to feel a fleeting sense of loss and affliction at wide intervals
|
|
and under peculiarly favoring circumstances- as in cases like to this,
|
|
for instance, when genius and culture depart and leave no heir.
|
|
However, a deep drink all round soon restored the spirits of the
|
|
mourners.
|
|
'Have any other of our friends fared hardly?' asked Hobbs.
|
|
'Some- yes. Particularly new-comers- such as small husbandmen
|
|
turned shiftless and hungry upon the world because their farms were
|
|
taken from them to be changed to sheep-ranges. They begged, and were
|
|
whipped at the cart's tail, naked from the girdle up, till the blood
|
|
ran; then set in the stocks to be pelted; they begged again, were
|
|
whipped again, and deprived of an ear; they begged a third time-
|
|
poor devils, what else could they do?- and were branded on the cheek
|
|
with a red-hot iron, then sold for slaves; they ran away, were
|
|
hunted down, and hanged. 'Tis a brief tale, and quickly told. Others
|
|
of us have fared less hardly. Stand forth, Yokel, Burns, and Hodge-
|
|
show your adornments!'
|
|
These stood up and stripped away some of their rags, exposing
|
|
their backs, crisscrossed with ropy old welts left by the lash; one
|
|
turned up his hair and showed the place where a left ear had once
|
|
been; another showed a brand upon his shoulder- the letter V and a
|
|
mutilated ear; the third said:
|
|
'I am Yokel, once a farmer and prosperous, with loving wife and
|
|
kids- now am I somewhat different in estate and calling; and the
|
|
wife and kids are gone; mayhap they are in heaven, mayhap in- in the
|
|
other place- but the kindly God be thanked, they bide no more in
|
|
England! My good old blameless mother strove to earn bread by
|
|
nursing the sick; one of these died, the doctors knew not how, so my
|
|
mother was burned for a witch, whilst my babes looked on and wailed.
|
|
English law!- up, all with your cups!- now all together and with a
|
|
cheer!- drink to the merciful English law that delivered her from
|
|
the English hell! Thank you, mates, one and all. I begged, from
|
|
house to house- I and the wife- bearing with us the hungry kids- but
|
|
it was a crime to be hungry in England- so they stripped us and lashed
|
|
us through three towns. Drink ye all again to the merciful English
|
|
law!- for its lash drank deep of my Mary's blood and its blessed
|
|
deliverance came quick. She lies there, in the potter's field, safe
|
|
from all harms. And the kids- well, whilst the law lashed me from town
|
|
to town, they starved. Drink lads- only a drop- a drop to the poor
|
|
kids, that never did any creature harm. I begged again- begged for a
|
|
crust, and got the stocks and lost an ear- see, here bides the
|
|
stump; I begged again, and here is the stump of the other to keep me
|
|
minded of it. And still I begged again, and was sold for a slave- here
|
|
on my cheek under this stain, if I washed it off, ye might see the red
|
|
S the branding iron left there! A SLAVE! Do ye understand that word!
|
|
An English SLAVE!- that is he that stands before ye. I have run from
|
|
my master, and when I am found- the heavy curse of heaven fall on
|
|
the law of the land that hath commanded it!- I shall hang!'*(17)
|
|
A ringing voice came through the murky air:
|
|
'Thou shalt not!- and this day the end of that law is come!'
|
|
All turned, and saw the fantastic figure of the little king
|
|
approaching hurriedly; as it emerged into the light and was clearly
|
|
revealed, a general explosion of inquiries broke out:
|
|
'Who is it ? What is it? Who art thou, manikin?'
|
|
The boy stood unconfused in the midst of all those surprised and
|
|
questioning eyes, and answered with princely dignity:
|
|
'I am Edward, king of England.'
|
|
A wild burst of laughter followed, partly of derision and partly
|
|
of delight in the excellence of the joke. The king was stung. He
|
|
said sharply:
|
|
'Ye mannerless vagrants, is this your recognition of the royal
|
|
boon I have promised?'
|
|
He said more, with angry voice and excited gesture, but it was
|
|
lost in a whirlwind of laughter and mocking exclamations. 'John Hobbs'
|
|
made several attempts to make himself heard above the din, and at last
|
|
succeeded- saying:
|
|
'Mates, he is my son, a dreamer, a fool, and stark mad- mind him
|
|
not- he thinketh he is the king.'
|
|
'I am the king,' said Edward, turning toward him, 'as thou shalt
|
|
know to thy cost, in good time. Thou hast confessed a murder- thou
|
|
shalt swing for it.'
|
|
'Thou'lt betray me!- thou? An I get my hands upon thee-'
|
|
'Tut-tut!' said the burly Ruffler, interposing in time to save the
|
|
king, and emphasizing this service by knocking Hobbs down with his
|
|
fist, 'hast respect for neither kings nor Rufflers? An thou insult
|
|
my presence so again, I'll hang thee up myself.' Then he said to his
|
|
majesty, 'Thou must make no threats against thy mates, lad; and thou
|
|
must guard thy tongue from saying evil of them elsewhere. Be king,
|
|
if it please thy mad humor, but be not harmful in it. Sink the title
|
|
thou hast uttered- 'tis treason; we be bad men, in some few trifling
|
|
ways, but none among us is so base as to be traitor to his king; we be
|
|
loving and loyal hearts, in that regard. Note if I speak truth.
|
|
Now-all together: "Long live Edward, King of England!"'
|
|
'LONG LIVE EDWARD, KING OF ENGLAND!'
|
|
The response came with such a thunder-gust from the motley crew
|
|
that the crazy building vibrated to the sound. The little king's
|
|
face lighted with pleasure for an instant, and he slightly inclined
|
|
his head and said with grave simplicity:
|
|
'I thank you, my good people.'
|
|
This unexpected result threw the company into convulsions of
|
|
merriment. When something like quiet was presently come again, the
|
|
Ruffler said, firmly, but with an accent of good nature:
|
|
'Drop it, boy, 'tis not wise, nor well. Humor thy fancy, if thou
|
|
must, but choose some other title.'
|
|
A tinker shrieked out a suggestion:
|
|
'Foo-foo the First, king of the Mooncalves!'
|
|
The title 'took' at once, every throat responded, and a roaring
|
|
shout sent up, of:
|
|
'Long live Foo-foo the First, king of the Mooncalves!' followed by
|
|
hootings, cat-calls, and peals of laughter.
|
|
'Hale him forth, and crown him!'
|
|
'Robe him!'
|
|
'Scepter him!'
|
|
'Throne him!'
|
|
These and twenty other cries broke out at once; and almost
|
|
before the poor little victim could draw a breath he was crowned
|
|
with a tin basin, robed in a tattered blanket, throned upon a
|
|
barrel, and sceptered with tinker's soldering-iron. Then all flung
|
|
themselves upon their knees about him and sent up a chorus of ironical
|
|
wailings, and mocking supplications, while they swabbed their eyes
|
|
with their soiled and ragged sleeves and aprons:
|
|
'Be gracious to us, O sweet king!'
|
|
'Trample not upon thy beseeching worms, O noble majesty!'
|
|
'Pity thy slaves, and comfort them with a royal kick!'
|
|
'Cheer us and warm us with thy gracious rays, O flaming sun of
|
|
sovereignty!'
|
|
'Sanctify the ground with the touch of thy foot, that we may eat
|
|
the dirt and be ennobled!'
|
|
'Deign to spit upon us, O sire, that our children's children may
|
|
tell of thy princely condescension, and be proud and happy forever!'
|
|
But the humorous tinker made the 'hit' of the evening and
|
|
carried off the honors. Kneeling, he pretended to kiss the king's
|
|
foot, and was indignantly spurned; whereupon he went about begging for
|
|
a rag to paste over the place upon his face which had been touched
|
|
by the foot, saying it must be preserved from contact with the
|
|
vulgar air, and that he should make his fortune by going on the
|
|
highway and exposing it to view at the rate of a hundred shillings a
|
|
sight. He made himself so killingly funny that he was the envy and
|
|
admiration of the whole mangy rabble.
|
|
Tears of shame and indignation stood in the little monarch's eyes;
|
|
and the thought in his heart was, 'Had I offered them a deep wrong
|
|
they could not be more cruel- yet have I proffered naught but to do
|
|
them a kindness- and it is thus they use me for it!'
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII
|
|
The Prince with the Tramps
|
|
|
|
THE troop of vagabonds turned out at early dawn, and set forward
|
|
on their march. There was a lowering sky overhead, sloppy ground under
|
|
foot, and a winter chill in the air. All gaiety was gone from the
|
|
company; some were sullen and silent, some were irritable and
|
|
petulant, none were gentle-humored, all were thirsty.
|
|
The Ruffler put 'Jack' in Hugo's charge, with some brief
|
|
instructions, and commanded John Canty to keep away from him and let
|
|
him alone; he also warned Hugo not to be too rough with the lad.
|
|
After a while the weather grew milder, and the clouds lifted
|
|
somewhat. The troop ceased to shiver, and their spirits began to
|
|
improve. They grew more and more cheerful, and finally began to
|
|
chaff each other and insult passengers along the highway. This
|
|
showed that they were awaking to an appreciation of life and its
|
|
joys once more. The dread in which their sort was held was apparent in
|
|
the fact that everybody gave them the road, and took their ribald
|
|
insolences meekly, without venturing to talk back. They snatched linen
|
|
from the hedges, occasionally, in full view of the owners, who made no
|
|
protest, but only seemed grateful that they did not take the hedges,
|
|
too.
|
|
By and by they invaded a small farmhouse and made themselves at
|
|
home while the trembling farmer and his people swept the larder
|
|
clean to furnish a breakfast for them. They chucked the housewife
|
|
and her daughters under the chin while receiving the food from their
|
|
hands, and made coarse jests about them, accompanied with insulting
|
|
epithets and bursts of horse-laughter. They threw bones and vegetables
|
|
at the farmer and his sons, kept them dodging all the time, and
|
|
applauded uproariously when a good hit was made. They ended by
|
|
buttering the head of one of the daughters who resented some of
|
|
their familiarities. When they took their leave they threatened to
|
|
come back and burn the house over the heads of the family if any
|
|
report of their doings got to the ears of the authorities.
|
|
About noon, after a long and weary tramp, the gang came to a
|
|
halt behind a hedge on the outskirts of a considerable village. An
|
|
hour was allowed for rest, then the crew scattered themselves abroad
|
|
to enter the village at different points to ply their various
|
|
trades. 'Jack' was sent with Hugo. They wandered hither and thither
|
|
for some time, Hugo watching for opportunities to do a stroke of
|
|
business but finding none- so he finally said:
|
|
'I see naught to steal; it is a paltry place. Wherefore we will
|
|
beg.'
|
|
'We, forsooth! Follow thy trade- it befits thee. But I will not
|
|
beg.'
|
|
'Thou'lt not beg!' exclaimed Hugo, eying the king with surprise.
|
|
'Prithee, since when hast thou reformed?'
|
|
'What dost thou mean?'
|
|
'Mean? Hast thou not begged the streets of London all thy life?'
|
|
'I? Thou idiot!'
|
|
'Spare thy compliments- thy stock will last longer. Thy father
|
|
says thou hast begged all thy days. Mayhap he lied. Peradventure you
|
|
will even make so bold as to say he lied,' scoffed Hugo.
|
|
'Him you call my father? Yes, he lied.'
|
|
'Come, play not thy merry game of madman so far, mate; use it
|
|
for thy amusement, not thy hurt. An I tell him this, he will scorch
|
|
thee finely for it.'
|
|
'Save thyself the trouble. I will tell him.'
|
|
'I like thy spirit, I do in truth; but I do not admire thy
|
|
judgment. Bone-rackings and bastings be plenty enow in this life,
|
|
without going out of one's way to invite them. But a truce to these
|
|
matters; I believe your father. I doubt not he can lie; I doubt not he
|
|
doth lie, upon occasion, for the best of us do that; but there is no
|
|
occasion here. A wise man does not waste so good a commodity as
|
|
lying for naught. But come; sith it is thy humor to give over begging,
|
|
wherewithal shall we busy ourselves? With robbing kitchens?'
|
|
The king said, impatiently:
|
|
'Have done with this folly- you weary me!'
|
|
Hugo replied, with temper:
|
|
'Now harkee, mate; you will not beg, you will not rob; so be it.
|
|
But I will tell you what you will do. You will play decoy whilst I
|
|
beg. Refuse, an you think you may venture!'
|
|
The king was about to reply contemptuously, when Hugo said,
|
|
interrupting:
|
|
'Peace! Here comes one with a kindly face. Now will I fall down in
|
|
a fit. When the stranger runs to me, set you up a wail, and fall
|
|
upon your knees, seeming to weep; then cry out as if all the devils of
|
|
misery were in your belly, and say, "Oh, sir, it is my poor
|
|
afflicted brother, and we be friendless; o' God's name cast through
|
|
your merciful eyes one pitiful look upon a sick, forsaken, and most
|
|
miserable wretch; bestow one little penny out of thy riches upon one
|
|
smitten of God and ready to perish!"- and mind you, keep you on
|
|
wailing, and abate not till we bilk him of his penny, else shall you
|
|
rue it.'
|
|
Then immediately Hugo began to moan, and groan, and roll his eyes,
|
|
and reel and totter about; and when the stranger was close at hand,
|
|
down he sprawled before him, with a shriek, and began to writhe and
|
|
wallow in the dirt, in seeming agony.
|
|
'O dear, O dear!' cried the benevolent stranger. 'Oh, poor soul,
|
|
poor soul, how he doth suffer! There- let me help thee up.'
|
|
'O, noble sir, forbear, and God love you for a princely gentleman-
|
|
but it giveth me cruel pain to touch me when I am taken so. My brother
|
|
there will tell your worship how I am racked with anguish when these
|
|
fits be upon me. A penny, dear sir, a penny, to buy a little food;
|
|
then leave me to my sorrows.'
|
|
'A penny! thou shalt have three, thou hapless creature'- and he
|
|
fumbled in his pocket with nervous haste and got them out. 'There,
|
|
poor lad, take them, and most welcome. Now come hither, my boy, and
|
|
help me carry thy stricken brother to yon house, where-'
|
|
'I am not his brother,' said the king, interrupting.
|
|
'What! not his brother?'
|
|
'Oh, hear him!' groaned Hugo, then privately ground his teeth. 'He
|
|
denies his own brother- and he with one foot in the grave!'
|
|
'Boy, thou art indeed hard of heart, if this is thy brother. For
|
|
shame!- and he scarce able to move hand or foot. If he is not thy
|
|
brother, who is he, then?'
|
|
'A beggar and a thief! He has got your money and has picked your
|
|
pocket likewise. An thou wouldst do a healing miracle, lay thy staff
|
|
over his shoulders and trust Providence for the rest.'
|
|
But Hugo did not tarry for the miracle. In a moment he was up
|
|
and off like the wind, the gentleman following after and raising the
|
|
hue and cry lustily as he went. The king, breathing deep gratitude
|
|
to Heaven for his own release, fled in the opposite direction and
|
|
did not slacken his pace until he was out of harm's reach. He took the
|
|
first road that offered, and soon put the village behind him. He
|
|
hurried along, as briskly as he could, during several hours, keeping a
|
|
nervous watch over his shoulder for pursuit; but his fears left him at
|
|
last, and a grateful sense of security took their place. He recognized
|
|
now that he was hungry; and also very tired. So he halted at a
|
|
farmhouse; but when he was about to speak, he was cut short and driven
|
|
rudely away. His clothes were against him.
|
|
He wandered on, wounded and indignant, and was resolved to put
|
|
himself in the way of light treatment no more. But hunger is pride's
|
|
master; so as the evening drew near, he made an attempt at another
|
|
farmhouse; but here he fared worse than before; for he was called hard
|
|
names and was promised arrest as a vagrant except he moved on
|
|
promptly.
|
|
The night came on, chilly and overcast; and still the footsore
|
|
monarch labored slowly on. He was obliged to keep moving, for every
|
|
time he sat down to rest he was soon penetrated to the bone with the
|
|
cold. All his sensations and experiences, as he moved through the
|
|
solemn gloom and the empty vastness of the night, were new and strange
|
|
to him. At intervals he heard voices approach, pass by, and fade
|
|
into silence; and as he saw nothing more of the bodies they belonged
|
|
to than a sort of formless drifting blur, there was something spectral
|
|
and uncanny about it all that made him shudder. Occasionally he caught
|
|
the twinkle of a light- always far away, apparently- almost in another
|
|
world; if he heard the tinkle of a sheep's bell, it was vague,
|
|
distant, indistinct; the muffled lowing of the herds floated to him on
|
|
the night wind in vanishing cadences, a mournful sound; now and then
|
|
came the complaining howl of a dog over viewless expanses of field and
|
|
forest; all sounds were remote; they made the little king feel that
|
|
all life and activity were far removed from him, and that he stood
|
|
solitary, companionless, in the center of a measureless solitude.
|
|
He stumbled along, through the gruesome fascinations of this new
|
|
experience, startled occasionally by the soft rustling of the dry
|
|
leaves overhead, so like human whispers they seemed to sound; and by
|
|
and by he came suddenly upon the freckled light of a tin lantern
|
|
near at hand. He stepped back into the shadows and waited. The lantern
|
|
stood by the open door of a barn. The king waited some time- there was
|
|
no sound, and nobody stirring. He got so cold, standing still, and the
|
|
hospitable barn looked so enticing, that at last he resolved to risk
|
|
everything and enter. He started swiftly and stealthily, and just as
|
|
he was crossing the threshold he heard voices behind him. He darted
|
|
behind a cask, within the barn, and stooped down. Two farm laborers
|
|
came in, bringing the lantern with them, and fell to work, talking
|
|
meanwhile. Whilst they moved about with the light, the king made
|
|
good use of his eyes and took the bearings of what seemed to be a
|
|
good-sized stall at the further end of the place, purposing to grope
|
|
his way to it when he should be left to himself. He also noted the
|
|
position of a pile of horse-blankets, midway of the route, with the
|
|
intent to levy upon them for the service of the crown of England for
|
|
one night.
|
|
By and by the men finished and went away, fastening the door
|
|
behind them and taking the lantern with them. The shivering king
|
|
made for the blankets, with as good speed as the darkness would allow;
|
|
gathered them up and then groped his way safely to the stall. Of two
|
|
of the blankets he made a bed, then covered himself with the remaining
|
|
two. He was a glad monarch now, though the blankets were old and thin,
|
|
and not quite warm enough; and besides gave out a pungent horsy odor
|
|
that was almost suffocatingly powerful.
|
|
Although the king was hungry and chilly, he was also so tired
|
|
and so drowsy that these latter influences soon began to get the
|
|
advantage of the former, and he presently dozed off into a state of
|
|
semi-consciousness. Then, just as he was on the point of losing
|
|
himself wholly, he distinctly felt something touch him. He was broad
|
|
awake in a moment, and gasping for breath. The cold horror of that
|
|
mysterious touch in the dark almost made his heart stand still. He lay
|
|
motionless, and listened, scarcely breathing. But nothing stirred, and
|
|
there was no sound. He continued to listen, and wait, during what
|
|
seemed a long time, but still nothing stirred, and there was no sound.
|
|
So he began to drop into a drowse once more at last; and all at once
|
|
he felt that mysterious touch again! It was a grisly thing, this light
|
|
touch from this noiseless and invisible presence; it made the boy sick
|
|
with ghostly fears. What should he do? That was the question; but he
|
|
did not know how to answer it. Should he leave these reasonably
|
|
comfortable quarters and fly from this inscrutable horror? But fly
|
|
whither? He could not get out of the barn; and the idea of scurrying
|
|
blindly hither and thither in the dark, within the captivity of the
|
|
four walls, with this phantom gliding after him, and visiting him with
|
|
that soft hideous touch upon cheek or shoulder at every turn, was
|
|
intolerable. But to stay where he was, and endure this living death
|
|
all night- was that better? No. What, then, was there left to do?
|
|
Ah, there was but one course; he knew it well- he must put out his
|
|
hand and find that thing!
|
|
It was easy to think this; but it was hard to brace himself up
|
|
to try it. Three times he stretched his hand a little way out into the
|
|
dark gingerly; and snatched it suddenly back, with a gasp- not because
|
|
it had encountered anything, but because he had felt so sure it was
|
|
just going to. But the fourth time he groped a little further, and his
|
|
hand lightly swept against something soft and warm. This petrified him
|
|
nearly with fright- his mind was in such a state that he could imagine
|
|
the thing to be nothing else than a corpse, newly dead and still warm.
|
|
He thought he would rather die than touch it again. But he thought
|
|
this false thought because he did not know the immortal strength of
|
|
human curiosity. In no long time his hand was tremblingly groping
|
|
again- against his judgment, and without his consent- but groping
|
|
persistently on, just the same. It encountered a bunch of long hair;
|
|
he shuddered, but followed up the hair and found what seemed to be a
|
|
warm rope; followed up the rope and found an innocent calf; for the
|
|
rope was not a rope at all, but the calf's tail.
|
|
The king was cordially ashamed of himself for having gotten all
|
|
that fright and misery out of so paltry a matter as a slumbering calf;
|
|
but he need not have felt so about it, for it was not the calf that
|
|
frightened him but a dreadful non-existent something which the calf
|
|
stood for; and any other boy, in those old superstitous times, would
|
|
have acted and suffered just as he had done.
|
|
The king was not only delighted to find that the creature was only
|
|
a calf, but delighted to have the calf's company; for he had been
|
|
feeling so lonesome and friendless that the company and comradeship of
|
|
even this humble animal was welcome. And he had been so buffeted, so
|
|
rudely entreated by his own kind, that it was a real comfort to him to
|
|
feel that he was at last in the society of a fellow-creature that
|
|
had at least a soft heart and a gentle spirit, whatever loftier
|
|
attributes might be lacking. So he resolved to waive rank and make
|
|
friends with the calf.
|
|
While stroking its sleek, warm back- for it lay near him and
|
|
within easy reach- it occurred to him that this calf might be utilized
|
|
in more ways than one. Whereupon he rearranged his bed, spreading it
|
|
down close to the calf; then he cuddled himself up to the calf's back,
|
|
drew the covers up over himself and his friend, and in a minute or two
|
|
was as warm and comfortable as he had ever been in the downy couches
|
|
of the regal palace of Westminster.
|
|
Pleasant thoughts came at once; life took on a cheerfuler seeming.
|
|
He was free of the bonds of servitude and crime, free of the
|
|
companionship of base and brutal outlaws; he was warm, he was
|
|
sheltered; in a word, he was happy. The night wind was rising; it
|
|
swept by in fitful gusts that made the old barn quake and rattle, then
|
|
its forces died down at intervals, and went moaning and wailing around
|
|
corners and projections- but it was all music to the king, now that he
|
|
was snug and comfortable; let it blow and rage, let it batter and
|
|
bang, let it moan and wail, he minded it not, he only enjoyed it. He
|
|
merely snuggled the closer to his friend, in a luxury of warm
|
|
contentment, and drifted blissfully out of consciousness into a deep
|
|
and dreamless sleep that was full of serenity and peace. The distant
|
|
dogs howled, the melancholy kine complained; and the winds went on
|
|
raging, whilst furious sheets of rain drove along the roof; but the
|
|
majesty of England slept on undisturbed, and the calf did the same, it
|
|
being a simple creature and not easily troubled by storms or
|
|
embarrassed by sleeping with a king.
|
|
CHAPTER XIX
|
|
The Prince with the Peasants
|
|
|
|
WHEN the king awoke in the early morning, he found that a wet
|
|
but thoughtful rat had crept into the place during the night and
|
|
made a cozy bed for itself in his bosom. Being disturbed now, it
|
|
scampered away. The boy smiled, and said, 'Poor fool, why so
|
|
fearful? I am as forlorn as thou. 'Twould be a shame in me to hurt the
|
|
helpless, who am myself so helpless. Moreover, I owe you thanks for
|
|
a good omen; for when a king has fallen so low that the very rats do
|
|
make a bed of him, it surely meaneth that his fortunes be upon the
|
|
turn, since it is plain he can no lower go.'
|
|
He got up and stepped out of the stall, and just then he heard the
|
|
sound of children's voices. The barn door opened and a couple of
|
|
little girls came in. As soon as they saw him their talking and
|
|
laughing ceased, and they stopped and stood still, gazing at him
|
|
with strong curiosity; they presently began to whisper together,
|
|
then they approached nearer, and stopped again to gaze and whisper. By
|
|
and by they gathered courage and began to discuss him aloud. One said:
|
|
'He hath a comely face.'
|
|
The other added:
|
|
'And pretty hair.'
|
|
'But is ill clothed enow.'
|
|
'And how starved he looketh.'
|
|
They came still nearer, sidling shyly around and about him,
|
|
examining him minutely from all points, as if he were some strange new
|
|
kind of animal; but warily and watchfully the while, as if they half
|
|
feared he might be a sort of animal that would bite, upon occasion.
|
|
Finally they halted before him, holding each other's hands for
|
|
protection, and took a good satisfying stare with their innocent eyes;
|
|
then one of them plucked up all her courage and inquired with honest
|
|
directness:
|
|
'Who art thou, boy?'
|
|
'I am the king,' was the grave answer.
|
|
The children gave a little start, and their eyes spread themselves
|
|
wide open and remained so during a speechless half-minute. Then
|
|
curiosity broke the silence:
|
|
'The king? What king?'
|
|
'The king of England.'
|
|
The children looked at each other- then at him- then at each other
|
|
again- wonderingly, perplexedly- then one said:
|
|
'Didst hear him, Margery?- he saith he is the king. Can that be
|
|
true?'
|
|
'How can it be else but true, Prissy? Would he say a lie? For look
|
|
you, Prissy, an it were not true, it would be a lie. It surely would
|
|
be. Now think on't. For all things that be not true, be lies- thou
|
|
canst make naught else out of it.'
|
|
It was a good, tight argument, without a leak in it anywhere;
|
|
and it left Prissy's half-doubts not a leg to stand on. She considered
|
|
a moment, then put the king upon his honor with the simple remark:
|
|
'If thou art truly the king, then I believe thee.'
|
|
'I am truly the king.'
|
|
This settled the matter. His majesty's royalty was accepted
|
|
without further question or discussion, and the two little girls began
|
|
at once to inquire into how he came to be where he was, and how he
|
|
came to be so unroyally clad, and whither he was bound, and all
|
|
about his affairs. It was a mighty relief to him to pour out his
|
|
troubles where they would not be scoffed at or doubted; so he told his
|
|
tale with feeling, forgetting even his hunger for the time; and it was
|
|
received with the deepest and tenderest sympathy by the gentle
|
|
little maids. But when he got down to his latest experiences and
|
|
they learned how long he had been without food, they cut him short and
|
|
hurried him away to the farmhouse to find a breakfast for him.
|
|
The king was cheerful and happy now, and said to himself, 'When
|
|
I am come to mine own again, I will always honor little children,
|
|
remembering how that these trusted me and believed in me in my time of
|
|
trouble; whilst they that were older, and thought themselves wiser,
|
|
mocked at me and held me for a liar.'
|
|
The children's mother received the king kindly, and was full of
|
|
pity; for his forlorn condition and apparently crazed intellect
|
|
touched her womanly heart. She was a widow, and rather poor;
|
|
consequently she had seen trouble enough to enable her to feel for the
|
|
unfortunate. She imagined that the demented boy had wandered away from
|
|
his friends or keepers; so she tried to find out whence he had come,
|
|
in order that she might take measures to return him; but all her
|
|
references to neighbouring towns and villages, and all her inquiries
|
|
in the same line, went for nothing- the boy's face, and his answers,
|
|
too, showed that the things she was talking of were not familiar to
|
|
him. He spoke earnestly and simply about court matters; and broke
|
|
down, more than once, when speaking of the late king 'his father'; but
|
|
whenever the conversation changed to baser topics, he lost interest
|
|
and became silent.
|
|
The woman was mightily puzzled; but she did not give up. As she
|
|
proceeded with her cooking, she set herself to contriving devices to
|
|
surprise the boy into betraying his real secret. She talked about
|
|
cattle- he showed no concern; then about sheep- the same result- so
|
|
her guess that he had been a shepherd boy was an error; she talked
|
|
about mills; and about weavers, tinkers, smiths, trades and
|
|
tradesmen of all sorts; and about Bedlam, and jails, and charitable
|
|
retreats; but no matter, she was baffled at all points. Not
|
|
altogether, either; for she argued that she had narrowed the thing
|
|
down to domestic service. Yes, she was sure she was on the right track
|
|
now- he must have been a house-servant. So she led up to that. But the
|
|
result was discouraging. The subject of sweeping appeared to weary
|
|
him; fire-building failed to stir him; scrubbing and scouring awoke no
|
|
enthusiasm. Then the goodwife touched, with a perishing hope, and
|
|
rather as a matter of form, upon the subject of cooking. To her
|
|
surprise, and her vast delight, the king's face lighted at once! Ah,
|
|
she had hunted him down at last, she thought; and she was right proud,
|
|
too, of the devious shrewdness and tact which had accomplished it.
|
|
Her tired tongue got a chance to rest now; for the king's,
|
|
inspired by gnawing hunger and the fragrant smells that came from
|
|
the sputtering pots and pans, turned itself loose and delivered itself
|
|
up to such an eloquent dissertation upon certain toothsome dishes,
|
|
that within three minutes the woman said to herself, 'Of a truth I was
|
|
right- he hath holpen in a kitchen!' Then he broadened his bill of
|
|
fare, and discussed it with such appreciation and animation, that
|
|
the goodwife said to herself, 'Good lack! how can he know so many
|
|
dishes, and so fine ones withal? For these belong only upon the tables
|
|
of the rich and great. Ah, now I see! ragged outcast as he is, he must
|
|
have served in the palace before his reason went astray; yes, he
|
|
must have helped in the very kitchen of the king himself! I will
|
|
test him.'
|
|
Full of eagerness to prove her sagacity, she told the king to mind
|
|
the cooking a moment- hinting that he might manufacture and add a dish
|
|
or two, if he chose- then she went out of the room and gave her
|
|
children a sign to follow after. The king muttered:
|
|
'Another English king had a commission like to this, in a bygone
|
|
time- it is nothing against my dignity to undertake an office which
|
|
the great Alfred stooped to assume. But I will try to better serve
|
|
my trust than he; for he let the cakes burn.'
|
|
The intent was good, but the performance was not answerable to it;
|
|
for this king, like the other one, soon fell into deep thinkings
|
|
concerning his vast affairs, and the same calamity resulted- the
|
|
cookery got burned. The woman returned in time to save the breakfast
|
|
from entire destruction; and she promptly brought the king out of
|
|
his dreams with a brisk and cordial tongue-lashing. Then, seeing how
|
|
troubled he was over his violated trust, she softened at once and
|
|
was all goodness and gentleness toward him.
|
|
The boy made a hearty and satisfying meal, and was greatly
|
|
refreshed and gladdened by it. It was a meal which was distinguished
|
|
by this curious feature, that rank was waived on both sides; yet
|
|
neither recipient of the favor was aware that it had been extended.
|
|
The goodwife had intended to feed this young tramp with broken
|
|
victuals in a corner, like any other tramp, or like a dog; but she was
|
|
so remorseful for the scolding she had given him, that she did what
|
|
she could to atone for it by allowing him to sit at the family table
|
|
and eat with his betters, on ostensible terms of equality with them;
|
|
and the king, on his side, was so remorseful for having broken his
|
|
trust, after the family had been so kind to him, that he forced
|
|
himself to atone for it by humbling himself to the family level,
|
|
instead of requiring the woman and her children to stand and wait upon
|
|
him while he occupied their table in the solitary state due his
|
|
birth and dignity. It does us all good to unbend sometimes. This
|
|
good woman was made happy all the day long by the applauses she got
|
|
out of herself for her magnanimous condescension to a tramp; and the
|
|
king was just as self-complacent over his gracious humility toward a
|
|
humble peasant woman.
|
|
When breakfast was over, the housewife told the king to wash up
|
|
the dishes. This command was a staggerer for a moment, and the king
|
|
came near rebelling; but then he said to himself, 'Alfred the Great
|
|
watched the cakes; doubtless he would have washed the dishes, too-
|
|
therefore will I essay it.'
|
|
He made a sufficiently poor job of it; and to his surprise, too,
|
|
for the cleaning of wooden spoons and trenchers had seemed an easy
|
|
thing to do. It was a tedious and troublesome piece of work, but he
|
|
finished it at last. He was becoming impatient to get away on his
|
|
journey now; however he was not to lose this thrifty dame's society so
|
|
easily. She furnished him some little odds and ends of employment,
|
|
which he got through with after a fair fashion and with some credit.
|
|
Then she set him and the little girls to paring some winter apples;
|
|
but he was so awkward at this service that she retired him from it and
|
|
gave him a butcher-knife to grind. Afterward she kept him carding wool
|
|
until he began to think he had laid the good King Alfred about far
|
|
enough in the shade for the present, in the matter of showy menial
|
|
heroisms that would read picturesquely in story-books and histories,
|
|
and so he was half minded to resign. And when, just after the
|
|
noonday dinner, the goodwife gave him a basket of kittens to drown, he
|
|
did resign. At least he was just going to resign- for he felt that
|
|
he must draw the line somewhere, and it seemed to him that to draw
|
|
it at kitten-drowning was about the right thing- when there was an
|
|
interruption. The interruption was John Canty- with a peddler's pack
|
|
on his back- and Hugo!
|
|
The king discovered these rascals approaching the front gate
|
|
before they had had a chance to see him; so he said nothing about
|
|
drawing the line, but took up his basket of kittens and stepped
|
|
quietly out the back way, without a word. He left the creatures in
|
|
an outhouse, and hurried on into a narrow lane at the rear.
|
|
CHAPTER XX
|
|
The Prince and the Hermit
|
|
|
|
THE high hedge hid him from the house now; and so, under the
|
|
impulse of a deadly fright, he let out all his forces and sped
|
|
toward a wood in the distance. He never looked back until he had
|
|
almost gained the shelter of the forest; then he turned and descried
|
|
two figures in the distance. That was sufficient; he did not wait to
|
|
scan them critically, but hurried on, and never abated his pace till
|
|
he was far within the twilight depths of the wood. Then he stopped;
|
|
being persuaded that he was now tolerably safe. He listened
|
|
intently, but the stillness was profound and solemn- awful, even,
|
|
and depressing to the spirits. At wide intervals his straining ear did
|
|
detect sounds, but they were so remote, and hollow, and mysterious,
|
|
that they seemed not to be real sounds, but only the moaning and
|
|
complaining ghosts of departed ones. So the sounds were yet more
|
|
dreary than the silence which they interrupted.
|
|
It was his purpose, in the beginning, to stay where he was, the
|
|
rest of the day; but a chill soon invaded his perspiring body, and
|
|
he was at last obliged to resume movement in order to get warm. He
|
|
struck straight through the forest, hoping to pierce to a road
|
|
presently, but he was disappointed in this. He traveled on and on; but
|
|
the farther he went, the denser the wood became, apparently. The gloom
|
|
began to thicken, by and by, and the king realized that the night
|
|
was coming on. It made him shudder to think of spending it in such
|
|
an uncanny place; so he tried to hurry faster, but he only made the
|
|
less speed, for he could not now see well enough to choose his steps
|
|
judiciously; consequently he kept tripping over roots and tangling
|
|
himself in vines and briers.
|
|
And how glad he was when at last he caught the glimmer of a light!
|
|
He approached it warily, stopping often to look about him and
|
|
listen. It came from an unglazed window-opening in a little hut. He
|
|
heard a voice now, and felt a disposition to run and hide; but he
|
|
changed his mind at once, for his voice was praying, evidently. He
|
|
glided to the one window of the hut, raised himself on tiptoe, and
|
|
stole a glance within. The room was small; its floor was the natural
|
|
earth, beaten hard by use; in a corner was a bed of rushes and a
|
|
ragged blanket or two; near it was a pail, a cup, a basin, and two
|
|
or three pots and pans; there was a short bench and a three-legged
|
|
stool; on the hearth the remains of a fagot fire were smoldering;
|
|
before a shrine, which was lighted by a single candle, knelt an aged
|
|
man, and on an old wooden box at his side lay an open book and a human
|
|
skull. The man was of large, bony frame; his hair and whiskers were
|
|
very long and snowy white; he was clothed in a robe of sheepskins
|
|
which reached from his neck to his heels.
|
|
'A holy hermit!' said the king to himself; 'now am I indeed
|
|
fortunate.'
|
|
The hermit rose from his knees; the king knocked. A deep voice
|
|
responded:
|
|
'Enter!- but leave sin behind, for the ground whereon thou shalt
|
|
stand is holy!'
|
|
The king entered, and paused. The hermit turned a pair of
|
|
gleaming, unrestful eyes upon him, and said:
|
|
'Who art thou?'
|
|
'I am the king,' came the answer, with placid simplicity.
|
|
'Welcome, king!' cried the hermit, with enthusiasm. Then, bustling
|
|
about with feverish activity, and constantly saying 'Welcome,
|
|
welcome,' he arranged his bench, seated the king on it, by the hearth,
|
|
threw some fagots on the fire, and finally fell to pacing the floor,
|
|
with a nervous stride.
|
|
'Welcome! Many have sought sanctuary here, but they were not
|
|
worthy, and were turned away. But a king who casts his crown away, and
|
|
despises the vain splendors of his office, and clothes his body in
|
|
rags, to devote his life to holiness and the mortification of the
|
|
flesh- he is worthy, he is welcome!- here shall he abide all his
|
|
days till death come.' The king hastened to interrupt and explain, but
|
|
the hermit paid no attention to him- did not even hear him apparently,
|
|
but went right on with his talk, with a raised voice and a growing
|
|
energy. 'And thou shalt be at peace here. None shall find out thy
|
|
refuge to disquiet thee with supplications to return to that empty and
|
|
foolish life which God hath moved thee to abandon. Thou shalt pray
|
|
here; thou shalt study the Book; thou shalt meditate upon the
|
|
follies and delusions of this world, and upon the sublimities of the
|
|
world to come; thou shalt feed upon crusts and herbs, and scourge
|
|
thy body with whips daily, to the purifying of thy soul. Thou shalt
|
|
wear a hair shirt next thy skin; thou shalt drink water only; and thou
|
|
shalt be at peace; yes, wholly at peace; for whoso comes to seek
|
|
thee shall go his way again baffled; he shall not find thee, he
|
|
shall not molest thee.'
|
|
The old man, still pacing back and forth, ceased to speak aloud,
|
|
and began to mutter. The king seized this opportunity to state his
|
|
case; and he did it with an eloquence inspired by uneasiness and
|
|
apprehension. But the hermit went on muttering, and gave no heed.
|
|
And still muttering, he approached the king and said, impressively:
|
|
''Sh! I will tell you a secret!' He bent down to impart it, but
|
|
checked himself, and assumed a listening attitude. After a moment or
|
|
two he went on tiptoe to the window-opening, put his head out and
|
|
peered around in the gloaming, then came tiptoeing back again, put his
|
|
face close down to the king's and whispered:
|
|
'I am an archangel!'
|
|
The king started violently, and said to himself, 'Would God I were
|
|
with the outlaws again; for lo, now am I the prisoner of a madman!'
|
|
His apprehensions were heightened, and they showed plainly in his
|
|
face. In a low, excited voice, the hermit continued:
|
|
'I see you feel my atmosphere! There's awe in your face! None
|
|
may be in this atmosphere and not be thus affected; for it is the very
|
|
atmosphere of heaven. I go thither and return, in the twinkling of
|
|
an eye. I was made an archangel on this very spot, it is five years
|
|
ago, by angels sent from heaven to confer that awful dignity. Their
|
|
presence filled this place with an intolerable brightness. And they
|
|
knelt to me, king! yes, they knelt to me! for I was greater than they.
|
|
I have walked in the courts of heaven, and held speech with the
|
|
patriarchs. Touch my hand- be not afraid- touch it. There- now thou
|
|
hast touched a hand which has been clasped by Abraham, and Isaac,
|
|
and Jacob! For I have walked in the golden courts, I have seen the
|
|
Deity face to face!' He paused, to give this speech effect; then his
|
|
face suddenly changed, and he started to his feet again, saying,
|
|
with angry energy, 'Yes, I am an archangel; a mere archangel!- I
|
|
that might have been pope! It is verily true. I was told it from
|
|
heaven in a dream, twenty years ago; ah, yes, I was to be pope!- and I
|
|
should have been pope, for Heaven had said it- but the king
|
|
dissolved my religious house, and I, poor obscure unfriended monk, was
|
|
cast homeless upon the world, robbed of my mighty destiny!' Here he
|
|
began to mumble again, and beat his forehead in futile rage, with
|
|
his fist; now and then articulating a venomous curse, and now and then
|
|
a pathetic 'Wherefore I am naught but an archangel- I that should have
|
|
been pope!'
|
|
So he went on for an hour, while the poor little king sat and
|
|
suffered. Then all at once the old man's frenzy departed, and he
|
|
became all gentleness. His voice softened, he came down out of his
|
|
clouds, and fell to prattling along so simply and so humanely, that he
|
|
soon won the king's heart completely. The old devotee moved the boy
|
|
nearer to the fire and made him comfortable; doctored his small
|
|
bruises and abrasions with a deft and tender hand; and then set
|
|
about preparing and cooking a supper- chatting pleasantly all the
|
|
time, and occasionally stroking the lad's cheek or patting his head,
|
|
in such a gently caressing way that in a little while all the fear and
|
|
repulsion inspired by the archangel were changed to reverence and
|
|
affection for the man.
|
|
This happy state of things continued while the two ate the supper;
|
|
then, after a prayer before the shrine, the hermit put the boy to bed,
|
|
in a small adjoining room, tucking him in as snugly and lovingly as
|
|
a mother might; and so, with a parting caress, left him and sat down
|
|
by the fire, and began to poke the brands about in an absent and
|
|
aimless way. Presently he paused; then tapped his forehead several
|
|
times with his fingers, as if trying to recall some thought which
|
|
had escaped from his mind. Apparently he was unsuccessful. Now he
|
|
started quickly up, and entered his guest's room, and said:
|
|
'Thou art king?'
|
|
'Yes,' was the response, drowsily uttered.
|
|
'What king?'
|
|
'Of England.'
|
|
'Of England. Then Henry is gone!'
|
|
'Alack, it is so. I am his son.'
|
|
A black frown settled down upon the hermit's face, and he clenched
|
|
his bony hands with a vindictive energy. He stood a few moments,
|
|
breathing fast and swallowing repeatedly, then said in a husky voice:
|
|
'Dost know it was he that turned us out into the world houseless
|
|
and homeless?'
|
|
There was no response. The old man bent down and scanned the boy's
|
|
reposeful face and listened to his placid breathing. 'He sleeps-
|
|
sleeps soundly'; and the frown vanished away and gave place to an
|
|
expression of evil satisfaction. A smile flitted across the dreaming
|
|
boy's features. The hermit muttered, 'So- his heart is happy'; and
|
|
he turned away. He went stealthily about the place, seeking here and
|
|
there for something; now and then halting to listen, now and then
|
|
jerking his head around and casting a quick glance toward the bed; and
|
|
always muttering, always mumbling to himself. At last he found what he
|
|
seemed to want- a rusty old butcher-knife and a whetstone. Then he
|
|
crept to his place by the fire, sat himself down, and began to whet
|
|
the knife softly on the stone, still muttering, mumbling, ejaculating.
|
|
The winds sighed around the lonely place, the mysterious voices of the
|
|
night floated by out of the distances. The shining eyes of venturesome
|
|
mice and rats peered out at the old man from cracks and coverts, but
|
|
he went on with his work, rapt, absorbed, and noted none of these
|
|
things.
|
|
At long intervals he drew his thumb along the edge of his knife,
|
|
and nodded his head with satisfaction. 'It grows sharper,' he said;
|
|
'yes, it grows sharper.'
|
|
He took no note of the flight of time, but worked tranquilly on,
|
|
entertaining himself with his thoughts, which broke out occasionally
|
|
in articulate speech:
|
|
'His father wrought us evil, he destroyed us- and is gone down
|
|
into the eternal fires! Yes, down into the eternal fires! He escaped
|
|
us- but it was God's will, yes it was God's will, we must not
|
|
repine. But he hath not escaped the fires! no, he hath not escaped the
|
|
fires, the consuming, unpitying, remorseless fires- and they are
|
|
everlasting!'
|
|
And so he wrought; and still wrought; mumbling- chuckling a low
|
|
rasping chuckle at times- and at times breaking again into words:
|
|
'It was his father that did it all. I am but an archangel- but for
|
|
him, I should be pope!'
|
|
The king stirred. The hermit sprang noiselessly to the bedside,
|
|
and went down upon his knees, bending over the prostrate form with his
|
|
knife uplifted. The boy stirred again; his eyes came open for an
|
|
instant, but there was no speculation in them, they saw nothing; the
|
|
next moment his tranquil breathing showed that his sleep was sound
|
|
once more.
|
|
The hermit watched and listened for a time, keeping his position
|
|
and scarcely breathing; then he slowly lowered his arm, and
|
|
presently crept away, saying:
|
|
'It is long past midnight- it is not best that he should cry
|
|
out, lest by accident some one be passing.'
|
|
He glided about his hovel, gathering a rag here, a thong there,
|
|
and another one yonder; then he returned, and by careful and gentle
|
|
handling he managed to tie the king's ankles together without waking
|
|
him. Next he essayed to tie the wrists; he made several attempts to
|
|
cross them, but the boy always drew one hand or the other away, just
|
|
as the cord was ready to be applied; but at last, when the archangel
|
|
was almost ready to despair, the boy crossed his hands himself, and
|
|
the next moment they were bound. Now a bandage was passed under the
|
|
sleeper's chin and brought up over his head and tied fast- and so
|
|
softly, so gradually, and so deftly were the knots drawn together
|
|
and compacted, that the boy slept peacefully through it all without
|
|
stirring.
|
|
CHAPTER XXI
|
|
Hendon to the Rescue
|
|
|
|
The old man glided away, stooping, stealthily, catlike, and
|
|
brought the low bench. He seated himself upon it, half his body in the
|
|
dim and flickering light, and the other half in shadow; and so, with
|
|
his craving eyes bent upon the slumbering boy, he kept his patient
|
|
vigil there, heedless of the drift of time, and softly whetted his
|
|
knife, and mumbled and chuckled; and in aspect and attitude he
|
|
resembled nothing so much as a grizzly, monstrous spider, gloating
|
|
over some hapless insect that lay bound and helpless in his web.
|
|
After a long while, the old man, who was still gazing- yet not
|
|
seeing, his mind having settled into a dreamy abstraction- observed on
|
|
a sudden that the boy's eyes were open- wide open and staring!-
|
|
staring up in frozen horror at the knife. The smile of a gratified
|
|
devil crept over the old man's face, and he said, without changing his
|
|
attitude or occupation:
|
|
'Son of Henry the Eighth, hast thou prayed?'
|
|
The boy struggled helplessly in his bonds; and at the same time
|
|
forced a smothered sound through his closed jaws, which the hermit
|
|
chose to interpret as an affirmative answer to his question.
|
|
'Then pray again. Pray the prayer for the dying!'
|
|
A shudder shook the boy's frame, and his face blenched. Then he
|
|
struggled again to free himself- turning and twisting himself this way
|
|
and that; tugging frantically, fiercely, desperately- but uselessly-
|
|
to burst his fetters; and all the while the old ogre smiled down
|
|
upon him, and nodded his head, and placidly whetted his knife,
|
|
mumbling, from time to time, 'The moments are precious, they are few
|
|
and precious- pray the prayer for the dying!'
|
|
The boy uttered a despairing groan, and ceased from his struggles,
|
|
panting. The tears came, then, and trickled, one after the other, down
|
|
his face; but this piteous sight wrought no softening effect upon
|
|
the savage old man.
|
|
The dawn was coming now; the hermit observed it, and spoke up
|
|
sharply, with a touch of nervous apprehension in his voice:
|
|
'I may not indulge this ecstasy longer! The night is already gone.
|
|
It seems but a moment- only a moment; would it had endured a year!
|
|
Seed of the Church's spoiler, close thy perishing eyes, an thou
|
|
fearest to look upon...'
|
|
The rest was lost in inarticulate mutterings. The old man sank
|
|
upon his knees, his knife in his hand, and bent himself over the
|
|
moaning boy-
|
|
Hark! There was a sound of voices near the cabin- the knife
|
|
dropped from the hermit's hand; he cast a sheepskin over the boy and
|
|
started up, trembling. The sounds increased, and presently the
|
|
voices became rough and angry; then came blows, and cries for help;
|
|
then a clatter of swift footsteps retreating. Immediately came a
|
|
succession of thundering knocks upon the cabin door, followed by:
|
|
'Hullo-o-o! Open! And despatch, in the name of all the devils!'
|
|
Oh, this was the blessedest sound that had ever made music in
|
|
the king's ears; for it was Miles Hendon's voice!
|
|
The hermit, grinding his teeth in impotent rage, moved swiftly out
|
|
of the bedchamber, closing the door behind him; and straightway the
|
|
king heard a talk, to this effect, proceeding from the 'chapel':
|
|
'Homage and greeting, reverend sir! Where is the boy- my boy?'
|
|
'What boy, friend?'
|
|
'What boy! Lie me no lies, sir priest, play me no deceptions! I am
|
|
not in the humor for it. Near to this place I caught the scoundrels
|
|
who I judged did steal him from me, and I made them confess; they said
|
|
he was at large again, and they had tracked him to your door. They
|
|
showed me his very footprints. Now palter no more; for look you,
|
|
holy sir, an thou produce him not- Where is the boy?'
|
|
'Oh, good sir, peradventure you mean the ragged regal vagrant that
|
|
tarried here the night. If such as you take interest in such as he,
|
|
know, then, that I have sent him of an errand. He will be back anon.'
|
|
'How soon? How soon? Come, waste not the time- cannot I overtake
|
|
him? How soon will he be back?'
|
|
'Thou needst not stir; he will return quickly.'
|
|
'So be it then. I will try to wait. But stop!- you sent him of
|
|
an errand?- you! Verily, this is a lie- he would not go. He would pull
|
|
thy old beard, an thou didst offer him such an insolence. Thou hast
|
|
lied, friend; thou hast surely lied! He would not go for thee nor
|
|
for any man.'
|
|
'For any man- no; haply not. But I am not a man.'
|
|
'What! Now o' God's name what art thou, then?'
|
|
'It is a secret- mark thou reveal it not. I am an archangel!'
|
|
There was a tremendous ejaculation from Miles Hendon- not
|
|
altogether unprofane- followed by:
|
|
'This doth well and truly account for his complaisance! Right well
|
|
I knew he would budge nor hand nor foot in the menial service of any
|
|
mortal; but Lord, even a king must obey when an archangel gives the
|
|
word o' command! Let me- 'sh! What noise was that?'
|
|
All this while the king had been yonder, alternately quaking
|
|
with terror and trembling with hope; and all the while, too, he had
|
|
thrown all the strength he could into his anguished moanings,
|
|
constantly expecting them to reach Hendon's ear, but always realizing,
|
|
with bitterness, that they failed, or at least made no impression.
|
|
So this last remark of his servant came as comes a reviving breath
|
|
from fresh fields to the dying; and he exerted himself once more,
|
|
and with all his energy, just as the hermit was saying:
|
|
'Noise? I heard only the wind.'
|
|
'Mayhap it was. Yes, doubtless that was it. I have been hearing it
|
|
faintly all the- there it is again! It is not the wind! What an odd
|
|
sound! Come, we will hunt it out!'
|
|
Now, the king's joy was nearly insupportable. His tired lungs
|
|
did their utmost- and hopefully, too- but the sealed jaws and the
|
|
muffling sheepskin sadly crippled the effort. Then the poor fellow's
|
|
heart sank, to hear the hermit say:
|
|
'Ah, it came from without- I think from the copse yonder. Come,
|
|
I will lead the way.'
|
|
The king heard the two pass out talking; heard their footsteps die
|
|
quickly away- then he was alone with a boding, brooding, awful
|
|
silence.
|
|
It seemed an age till he heard the steps and voices approaching
|
|
again- and this time he heard an added sound- the trampling of
|
|
hoofs, apparently. Then he heard Hendon say:
|
|
'I will not wait longer. I cannot wait longer. He has lost his way
|
|
in this thick wood. Which direction took he? Quick- point it out to
|
|
me.'
|
|
'He- but wait; I will go with thee.'
|
|
'Good- good! Why, truly thou art better than thy looks. Marry, I
|
|
do think there's not another archangel with so right a heart as thine.
|
|
Wilt ride? Wilt take the wee donkey that's for my boy, or wilt thou
|
|
fork thy holy legs over this ill-conditioned slave of a mule that I
|
|
have provided for myself?- and had been cheated in, too, had he cost
|
|
but the indifferent sum of a month's usury on a brass farthing let
|
|
to a tinker out of work.'
|
|
'No- ride thy mule, and lead thine ass; I am surer on mine own
|
|
feet, and will walk.'
|
|
'Then, prithee, mind the little beast for me while I take my
|
|
life in my hands and make what success I may toward mounting the big
|
|
one.'
|
|
Then followed a confusion of kicks, cuffs, tramplings and
|
|
plungings, accompanied by a thunderous intermingling of volleyed
|
|
curses, and finally a bitter apostrophe to the mule, which must have
|
|
broken its spirit, for hostilities seemed to cease from that moment.
|
|
With unutterable misery the fettered little king heard the
|
|
voices and footsteps fade away and die out. All hope forsook him now
|
|
for the moment, and a dull despair settled down upon his heart. 'My
|
|
only friend is deceived and got rid of,' he said; 'the hermit will
|
|
return and-' He finished with a gasp; and at once fell to struggling
|
|
so frantically with his bonds again, that he shook off the
|
|
smothering sheepskin.
|
|
And now he heard the door open! The sound chilled him to the
|
|
marrow- already he seemed to feel the knife at his throat. Horror made
|
|
him close his eyes; horror made him open them again- and before him
|
|
stood John Canty and Hugo!
|
|
He would have said 'Thank God!' if his jaws had been free.
|
|
A moment or two later his limbs were at liberty, and his
|
|
captors, each gripping him by an arm, were hurrying him with all speed
|
|
through the forest.
|
|
CHAPTER XXII
|
|
A Victim of Treachery
|
|
|
|
ONCE more 'King Foo-foo the First' was roving with the tramps
|
|
and outlaws, a butt for their coarse jests and dull-witted railleries,
|
|
and sometimes the victim of small spitefulnesses at the hands of Canty
|
|
and Hugo when the Ruffler's back was turned. None but Canty and Hugo
|
|
really disliked him. Some of the others liked him, and all admired his
|
|
pluck and spirit. During two or three days, Hugo, in whose ward and
|
|
charge the king was, did what he covertly could to make the boy
|
|
uncomfortable; and at night, during the customary orgies, he amused
|
|
the company by putting small indignities upon him- always as if by
|
|
accident. Twice he stepped upon the king's toes- accidentally- and the
|
|
king, as became his royalty, was contemptuously unconscious of it
|
|
and indifferent to it; but the third time Hugo entertained himself
|
|
in that way, the king felled him to the ground with a cudgel, to the
|
|
prodigious delight of the tribe. Hugo, consumed with anger and
|
|
shame, sprang up, seized a cudgel, and came at his small adversary
|
|
in a fury. Instantly a ring was formed around the gladiators, and
|
|
the betting and cheering began. But poor Hugo stood no chance
|
|
whatever. His frantic and lubberly 'prentice-work found but a poor
|
|
market for itself when pitted against an arm which had been trained by
|
|
the first masters of Europe in single-stick, quarter-staff, and
|
|
every art and trick of swordsmanship. The little king stood, alert but
|
|
at graceful ease, and caught and turned aside the thick rain of
|
|
blows with a facility and precision which set the motley onlookers
|
|
wild with admiration; and every now and then, when his practised eye
|
|
detected an opening, and a lightning-swift rap upon Hugo's head
|
|
followed as a result, the storm of cheers and laughter that swept
|
|
the place was something wonderful to hear. At the end of fifteen
|
|
minutes, Hugo, all battered, bruised, and the target for a pitiless
|
|
bombardment of ridicule, slunk from the field; and the unscathed
|
|
hero of the fight was seized and borne aloft upon the shoulders of the
|
|
joyous rabble to the place of honor beside the Ruffler, where with
|
|
vast ceremony he was crowned King of the Game-Cocks; his meaner
|
|
title being at the same time solemnly canceled and annulled, and a
|
|
decree of banishment from the gang pronounced against any who should
|
|
henceforth utter it.
|
|
All attempts to make the king serviceable to the troop had failed.
|
|
He had stubbornly refused to act; moreover, he was always trying to
|
|
escape. He had been thrust into an unwatched kitchen, the first day of
|
|
his return; he not only came forth empty-handed, but tried to rouse
|
|
the housemates. He was sent out with a tinker to help him at his work;
|
|
he would not work; moreover, he threatened the tinker with his own
|
|
soldering-iron; and finally both Hugo and the tinker found their hands
|
|
full with the mere matter of keeping him from getting away. He
|
|
delivered the thunders of his royalty upon the heads of all who
|
|
hampered his liberties or tried to force him to service. He was sent
|
|
out, in Hugo's charge, in company with a slatternly woman and a
|
|
diseased baby, to beg; but the result was not encouraging- he declined
|
|
to plead for the mendicants, or be a party to their cause in any way.
|
|
Thus several days went by; and the miseries of this tramping life,
|
|
and the weariness and sordidness and meanness and vulgarity of it,
|
|
became gradually and steadily so intolerable to the captive that he
|
|
began at last to feel that his release from the hermit's knife must
|
|
prove only a temporary respite from death, at best.
|
|
But at night, in his dreams, these things were forgotten, and he
|
|
was on his throne, and master again. This, of course, intensified
|
|
the sufferings of the awakening- so the mortifications of each
|
|
succeeding morning of the few that passed between his return to
|
|
bondage and the combat with Hugo, grew bitterer, and harder and harder
|
|
to bear.
|
|
The morning after that combat, Hugo got up with a heart filled
|
|
with vengeful purposes against the king. He had two plans in
|
|
particular. One was to inflict upon the lad what would be, to his
|
|
proud spirit and 'imagined' royalty, a peculiar humiliation; and if he
|
|
failed to accomplish this, his other plan was to put a crime of some
|
|
kind upon the king and then betray him into the implacable clutches of
|
|
the law.
|
|
In pursuance of the first plan, he proposed to put a 'clime'
|
|
upon the king's leg, rightly judging that that would mortify him to
|
|
the last and perfect degree; and as soon as the clime should
|
|
operate, he meant to get Canty's help, and force the king to expose
|
|
his leg in the highway and beg for alms. 'Clime' was the cant term for
|
|
a sore, artificially created. To make a clime, the operator made a
|
|
paste or poultice of unslaked lime, soap, and the rust of old iron,
|
|
and spread it upon a piece of leather, which was then bound tightly
|
|
upon the leg. This would presently fret off the skin, and make the
|
|
flesh raw and angry-looking; blood was then rubbed upon the limb,
|
|
which, being fully dried, took on a dark and repulsive color. Then a
|
|
bandage of soiled rags was put on in a cleverly careless way which
|
|
would allow the hideous ulcer to be seen and move the compassion of
|
|
the passer-by.*(18)
|
|
Hugo got the help of the tinker whom the king had cowed with the
|
|
soldering-iron; they took the boy out on a tinkering tramp, and as
|
|
soon as they were out of sight of the camp they threw him down and the
|
|
tinker held him while Hugo bound the poultice tight and fast upon
|
|
his leg.
|
|
The king raged and stormed, and promised to hang the two the
|
|
moment the scepter was in his hand again; but they kept a firm grip
|
|
upon him and enjoyed his impotent struggling and jeered at his
|
|
threats. This continued until the poultice began to bite; and in no
|
|
long time its work would have been perfected, if there had been no
|
|
interruption. But there was; for about this time the 'slave' who had
|
|
made the speech denouncing England's laws, appeared on the scene and
|
|
put an end to the enterprise, and stripped off the poultice and
|
|
bandage.
|
|
The king wanted to borrow his deliverer's cudgel and warm the
|
|
jackets of the two rascals on the spot; but the man said no, it
|
|
would bring trouble- leave the matter till night; the whole, tribe
|
|
being together, then, the outside world would not venture to interfere
|
|
or interrupt. He marched the party back to camp and reported the
|
|
affair to the Ruffler, who listened, pondered, and then decided that
|
|
the king should not be again detailed to beg, since it was plain he
|
|
was worthy of something higher and better- wherefore, on the spot he
|
|
promoted him from the mendicant rank and appointed him to steal!
|
|
Hugo was overjoyed. He had already tried to make the king steal,
|
|
and failed; but there would be no more trouble of that sort now,
|
|
for, of course, the king would not dream of defying a distinct command
|
|
delivered directly from headquarters. So he planned a raid for that
|
|
very afternoon, purposing to get the king in the law's grip in the
|
|
course of it; and to do it, too, with such ingenious strategy, that it
|
|
should seem to be accidental and unintentional; for the King of the
|
|
Game-Cocks was popular now, and the gang might not deal over-gently
|
|
with an unpopular member who played so serious a treachery upon him as
|
|
the delivering him over to the common enemy, the law.
|
|
Very well. All in good time Hugo strolled off to a neighboring
|
|
village with his prey; and the two drifted slowly up and down one
|
|
street after another, the one watching sharply for a sure chance to
|
|
achieve his evil purpose, and the other watching as sharply for a
|
|
chance to dart away and get free of his infamous captivity forever.
|
|
Both threw away some tolerably fair-looking opportunities; for
|
|
both, in their secret hearts, were resolved to make absolutely sure
|
|
work this time, and neither meant to allow his fevered desires to
|
|
seduce him into any venture that had much uncertainty about it.
|
|
Hugo's chance came first. For at last a woman approached who
|
|
carried a fat package of some sort in a basket. Hugo's eyes sparkled
|
|
with sinful pleasure as he said to himself, 'Breath o' my life, an I
|
|
can but put that upon him, 'tis good-den and God keep thee, King of
|
|
the Game-Cocks!' He waited and watched- outwardly patient, but
|
|
inwardly consuming with excitement- till the woman had passed by,
|
|
and the time was ripe; then said, in a low voice; 'Tarry here till I
|
|
come again,' and darted stealthily after the prey.
|
|
The king's heart was filled with joy- he could make his escape
|
|
now, if Hugo's quest only carried him far enough away.
|
|
But he was to have no such luck. Hugo crept behind the woman,
|
|
snatched the package, and came running back, wrapping it in an old
|
|
piece of blanket which he carried on his arm. The hue and cry was
|
|
raised in a moment by the woman, who knew her loss by the lightening
|
|
of her burden, although she had not seen the pilfering done. Hugo
|
|
thrust the bundle into the king's hands without halting, saying:
|
|
'Now speed ye after me with the rest, and cry "Stop thief!" but
|
|
mind ye lead them astray.'
|
|
The next moment Hugo turned a corner and darted down a crooked
|
|
alley- and in another moment or two he lounged into view again,
|
|
looking innocent and indifferent, and took up a position behind a post
|
|
to watch results.
|
|
The insulted king threw the bundle on the ground; and the
|
|
blanket fell away from it just as the woman arrived, with an
|
|
augmenting crowd at her heels; she seized the king's wrist with one
|
|
hand, snatched up her bundle with the other, and began to pour out a
|
|
tirade of abuse upon the boy while he struggled, without success, to
|
|
free himself from her grip.
|
|
Hugo had seen enough- his enemy was captured and the law would get
|
|
him now- so he slipped away, jubilant and chuckling and wended
|
|
campward, framing a judicious version of the matter to give to the
|
|
Ruffler's crew as he strode along.
|
|
The king continued to struggle in the woman's grasp, and now and
|
|
then cried out, in vexation:
|
|
'Unhand me, thou foolish creature; it was not I that bereaved thee
|
|
of thy paltry goods.'
|
|
The crowd closed around, threatening the king and calling him
|
|
names; a brawny blacksmith in leather apron, and sleeves rolled to his
|
|
elbows, made a reach for him, saying he would trounce him well, for
|
|
a lesson; but just then a long sword flashed in the air and fell
|
|
with convincing force upon the man's arm, flat-side down, the
|
|
fantastic owner of it remarking, pleasantly at the same time:
|
|
'Marry, good souls, let us proceed gently, not with ill blood
|
|
and uncharitable words. This is matter for the law's consideration,
|
|
not private and unofficial handling. Loose thy hold from the boy,
|
|
goodwife.'
|
|
The blacksmith averaged the stalwart soldier with a glance, then
|
|
went muttering away, rubbing his arm; the woman released the boy's
|
|
wrist reluctantly; the crowd eyed the stranger unlovingly, but
|
|
prudently closed their mouths. The king sprang to his deliverer's
|
|
side, with flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes exclaiming:
|
|
'Thou hast lagged sorely, but thou comest in good season now,
|
|
Sir Miles; carve me this rabble to rags!'
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII
|
|
The Prince a Prisoner
|
|
|
|
HENDON forced back a smile, and bent down and whispered in the
|
|
king's ear:
|
|
'Softly, softly my prince, wag thy tongue warily- nay, suffer it
|
|
not to wag at all. Trust in me- all shall go well in the end.' Then he
|
|
added, to himself: 'Sir Miles! Bless me, I had totally forgot I was
|
|
a knight! Lord how marvelous a thing it is, the grip his memory doth
|
|
take upon his quaint and crazy fancies!... An empty and foolish
|
|
title is mine, and yet it is something to have deserved it, for I
|
|
think it is more honor to be held worthy to be a specter-knight in his
|
|
Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows, than to be held base enough to be an
|
|
earl in some of the real kingdoms of this world.'
|
|
The crowd fell apart to admit a constable, who approached and
|
|
was about to lay his hand upon the king's shoulder, when Hendon said:
|
|
'Gently, good friend, withhold your hand- he shall go peaceably; I
|
|
am responsible for that. Lead on, we will follow.'
|
|
The officer led, with the woman and her bundle; Miles and the king
|
|
followed after, with the crowd at their heels. The king was inclined
|
|
to rebel; but Hendon said to him in a low voice:
|
|
'Reflect, sire- your laws are the wholesome breath of your own
|
|
royalty; shall their source reject them, yet require the branches to
|
|
respect them? Apparently, one of these laws has been broken; when
|
|
the king is on his throne again, can it ever grieve him to remember
|
|
that when he was seemingly a private person he loyally sunk the king
|
|
in the citizen and submitted to its authority?'
|
|
'Thou art right; say no more; thou shalt see that whatsoever the
|
|
king of England requires a subject to suffer under the law, he will
|
|
himself suffer while he holdeth the station of a subject.'
|
|
When the woman was called upon to testify before the justice of
|
|
the peace, she swore that the small prisoner at the bar was the person
|
|
who had committed the theft; there was none able to show the contrary,
|
|
so the king stood convicted. The bundle was now unrolled, and when the
|
|
contents proved to be a plump little dressed pig, the judge looked
|
|
troubled, while Hendon turned pale, and his body was thrilled with
|
|
an electric shiver of dismay; but the king remained unmoved, protected
|
|
by his ignorance. The judge meditated, during an ominous pause, then
|
|
turned to the woman, with question:
|
|
'What dost thou hold this property to be worth?'
|
|
The woman courtesied and replied:
|
|
'Three shillings and eightpence, your worship- I could not abate a
|
|
penny and set forth the value honestly.'
|
|
The justice glanced around uncomfortably upon the crowd, then
|
|
nodded to the constable and said:
|
|
'Clear the court and close the doors.'
|
|
It was done. None remained but the two officials, the accused, the
|
|
accuser, and Miles Hendon. This latter was rigid and colorless, and on
|
|
his forehead big drops of cold sweat gathered, broke and blended
|
|
together, and trickled down his face. The judge turned to the woman
|
|
again, and said, in a compassionate voice:
|
|
''Tis a poor ignorant lad, and mayhap was driven hard by hunger,
|
|
for these be grievous times for the unfortunate; mark you, he hath not
|
|
an evil face- but when hunger driveth- Good woman! dost know that when
|
|
one steals a thing above the value of thirteen pence ha'penny the
|
|
law saith he shall hang for it?'
|
|
The little king started, wide-eyed with consternation, but
|
|
controlled himself and held his peace; but not so the woman. She
|
|
sprang to her feet, shaking with fright and cried out:
|
|
'Oh, good lack, what have I done! God-a-mercy, I would not hang
|
|
the poor thing for the whole world! Ah, save me from this, your
|
|
worship- what shall I do, what can I do?'
|
|
The justice maintained his judicial composure, and simply said:
|
|
'Doubtless it is allowable to revise the value, since it is not
|
|
yet writ upon the record.'
|
|
'Then in God's name call the pig eightpence, and heaven bless
|
|
the day that freed my conscience of this awesome thing!'
|
|
Miles Hendon forgot all decorum in his delight; and surprised
|
|
the king and wounded his dignity by throwing his arms around him and
|
|
hugging him.
|
|
The woman made her grateful adieux and started away with her
|
|
pig; and when the constable opened the door for her, he followed her
|
|
out into the narrow hall. The justice proceeded to write in his
|
|
record-book. Hendon, always alert, thought he would like to know why
|
|
the officer followed the woman out; so he slipped softly into the
|
|
dusky hall and listened. He heard a conversation to this effect:
|
|
'It is a fat pig, and promises good eating; I will buy it of thee;
|
|
here is the eightpence.'
|
|
'Eightpence, indeed! Thou'lt do no such thing. It cost me three
|
|
shillings and eightpence, good honest coin of the last reign, that old
|
|
Harry that's just dead ne'er touched nor tampered with. A fig for
|
|
thy eightpence!'
|
|
'Stands the wind in that quarter? Thou wast under oath, and so
|
|
swore falsely when thou saidst the value was but eightpence. Come
|
|
straightway back with me before his worship, and answer for the
|
|
crime!- and then the lad will hang.'
|
|
'There, there, dear heart, say no more, I am content. Give me
|
|
the eightpence, and hold thy peace about the matter.'
|
|
The woman went off crying; Hendon slipped back into the courtroom,
|
|
and the constable presently followed, after hiding his prize in some
|
|
convenient place. The justice wrote a while longer, then read the king
|
|
a wise and kindly lecture, and sentenced him to a short imprisonment
|
|
in the common jail, to be followed by a public flogging. The astounded
|
|
king opened his mouth and was probably going to order the good judge
|
|
to be beheaded on the spot; but he caught a warning sign from
|
|
Hendon, and succeeded in closing his mouth again before he lost
|
|
anything out of it. Hendon took him by the hand, now made reverence to
|
|
the justice, and the two departed in the wake of the constable
|
|
toward the jail. The moment the street was reached, the inflamed
|
|
monarch halted, snatched away his hand, and exclaimed:
|
|
'Idiot, dost imagine I will enter a common jail alive?'
|
|
Hendon bent down and said, somewhat sharply:
|
|
'Will you trust in me? Peace! and forbear to worsen our chances
|
|
with dangerous speech. What God wills, will happen; thou canst not
|
|
hurry it, thou canst not alter it; therefore wait; and be patient-
|
|
'twill be time enow to rail or rejoice when what is to happen has
|
|
happened.'*(19)
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV
|
|
The Escape
|
|
|
|
THE short winter day was nearly ended. The streets were
|
|
deserted, save for a few random stragglers, and these hurried straight
|
|
along, with the intent look of people who were only anxious to
|
|
accomplish their errands as quickly as possible and then snugly
|
|
house themselves from the rising wind and the gathering twilight. They
|
|
looked neither to the right nor to the left; they paid no attention to
|
|
our party, they did not even seem to see them. Edward the Sixth
|
|
wondered if the spectacle of a king on his way to jail had ever
|
|
encountered such marvelous indifference before. By and by the
|
|
constable arrived at a deserted market-square and proceeded to cross
|
|
it. When he had reached the middle of it, Hendon laid his hand upon
|
|
his arm, and said in a low voice:
|
|
'Bide a moment, good sir, there is none in hearing, and I would
|
|
say a word to thee.'
|
|
'My duty forbids it, sir; prithee, hinder me not, the night
|
|
comes on.'
|
|
'Stay, nevertheless, for the matter concerns thee nearly. Turn thy
|
|
back moment and seem not to see; let this poor lad escape.'
|
|
'This to me, sir! I arrest thee in-'
|
|
'Nay, be not too hasty. See thou be careful and commit no
|
|
foolish error'- then he shut his voice down to a whisper, and said
|
|
in the man's ear- 'the pig thou hast purchased for eightpence may cost
|
|
thee thy neck, man!'
|
|
The poor constable, taken by surprise, was speechless at first,
|
|
then found his tongue and fell to blustering and threatening; but
|
|
Hendon was tranquil, and waited with patience till his breath was
|
|
spent; then said:
|
|
'I have a liking to thee, friend, and would not willingly see thee
|
|
come to harm. Observe, I heard it all- every word. I will prove it
|
|
to thee.' Then he repeated the conversation which the officer and
|
|
the woman had had together in the hall, word for word, and ended with:
|
|
'There- have I set it forth correctly? Should not I be able to set
|
|
it forth correctly before the judge, if occasion required?'
|
|
The man was dumb with fear and distress for a moment; then he
|
|
rallied and said with forced lightness:
|
|
''Tis making a mighty matter indeed, out of a jest; I but
|
|
plagued the woman for mine amusement.'
|
|
'Kept you the woman's pig for amusement?'
|
|
The man answered sharply:
|
|
'Naught else, good sir- I tell thee 'twas but a jest.'
|
|
'I do begin to believe thee,' said Hendon, with a perplexing
|
|
mixture of mockery and half-conviction in his tone; 'tarry thou here a
|
|
moment whilst I run and ask his worship- for nathless, he being a
|
|
man experienced in law, in jests, in-'
|
|
He was moving away, still talking; the constable hesitated,
|
|
fidgeted, spat an oath or two, then cried out:
|
|
'Hold, hold, good sir- prithee, wait a little- the judge! why man,
|
|
he hath no more sympathy with a jest than hath a dead corpse!- come,
|
|
and we will speak further. Ods body! I seem to be in evil case- and
|
|
all for an innocent and thoughtless pleasantry. I am a man of
|
|
family; and my wife and little ones- List to reason, good your
|
|
worship; what wouldst thou of me?'
|
|
'Only that thou be blind and dumb and paralytic whilst one may
|
|
count a hundred thousand- counting slowly,' said Hendon, with the
|
|
expression of a man who asks but a reasonable favor, and that a very
|
|
little one.
|
|
'It is my destruction!' said the constable despairingly. 'Ah, be
|
|
reasonable, good sir; only look at this matter, on all its sides,
|
|
and see how mere a jest it is- how manifestly and how plainly it is
|
|
so. And even if one granted it were not a jest, it is a fault so small
|
|
that e'en the grimmest penalty it could call forth would be but a
|
|
rebuke and warning from the judge's lips.'
|
|
Hendon replied with a solemnity which chilled the air about him:
|
|
'This jest of thine hath a name in law- wot you what it is?'
|
|
'I knew it not! Peradventure I have been unwise. I never dreamed
|
|
it had a name- ah, sweet heaven, I thought it was original.'
|
|
'Yes, it hath a name. In the law this crime is called Non compos
|
|
mentis lex talionis sic transit gloria Mundi.'
|
|
'Ah, my God!'
|
|
'And the penalty is death!'
|
|
'God be merciful to me, a sinner!'
|
|
'By advantage taken of one in fault, in dire peril, and at thy
|
|
mercy, thou hast seized goods worth above thirteen pence ha'penny,
|
|
paying but a trifle for the same; and this, in the eye of the law,
|
|
is constructive barratry, misprision of treason, malfeasance in
|
|
office, ad hominem expurgatis in statu quo- and the penalty is death
|
|
by the halter, without ransom, commutation, or benefit of clergy.'
|
|
'Bear me up, bear me up, sweet sir, my legs do fail me! Be thou
|
|
merciful- spare me this doom, and I will turn my back and see naught
|
|
that shall happen.'
|
|
'Good! now thou'rt wise and reasonable. And thou'lt restore the
|
|
pig?'
|
|
'I will, I will, indeed- nor ever touch another, though heaven
|
|
send it and archangel fetch it. Go- I am blind for thy sake- I see
|
|
nothing. I will say thou didst break in and wrest the prisoner from my
|
|
hands by force. It is but a crazy, ancient door- I will batter it down
|
|
myself betwixt midnight and the morning.'
|
|
'Do it, good soul, no harm will come of it; the judge hath a
|
|
loving charity for this poor lad, and will shed no tears and break
|
|
no jailer's bones for his escape.'
|
|
CHAPTER XXV
|
|
Hendon Hall
|
|
|
|
AS soon as Hendon and the king were out of sight of the constable,
|
|
his majesty was instructed to hurry to a certain place outside the
|
|
town, and wait there, whilst Hendon should go to the inn and settle
|
|
his account. Half an hour later the two friends were blithely
|
|
jogging eastward on Hendon's sorry steeds. The king was warm and
|
|
comfortable now, for he had cast his rags and clothed himself in the
|
|
second-hand suit which Hendon had bought on London Bridge.
|
|
Hendon wished to guard against over-fatiguing the boy; he judged
|
|
that hard journeys, irregular meals, and illiberal measures of sleep
|
|
would be bad for his crazed mind, while rest, regularity, and moderate
|
|
exercise would be pretty sure to hasten its cure; he longed to see the
|
|
stricken intellect made well again and its diseased visions driven out
|
|
of the tormented little head; therefore he resolved to move by easy
|
|
stages toward the home whence he had so long been banished, instead of
|
|
obeying the impulse of his impatience and hurrying along night and
|
|
day.
|
|
When he and the king had journeyed about ten miles, they reached a
|
|
considerable village, and halted there for the night, at a good inn.
|
|
The former relations were resumed; Hendon stood behind the king's
|
|
chair while he dined, and waited upon him; undressed him when he was
|
|
ready for bed; then took the floor for his own quarters, and slept
|
|
athwart the door, rolled up in a blanket.
|
|
The next day, and the next day after, they jogged lazily along
|
|
talking over the adventures they had met since their separation, and
|
|
mightily enjoying each other's narratives. Hendon detailed all his
|
|
wide wanderings in search of the king, and described how the archangel
|
|
had led him a fool's journey all over the forest, and taken him back
|
|
to the hut finally, when he found he could not get rid of him. Then-
|
|
he said- the old man went into the bed-chamber and came staggering
|
|
back looking broken-hearted, and saying he had expected to find that
|
|
the boy had returned and lain down in there to rest, but it was not
|
|
so. Hendon had waited at the hut all day; hope of the king's return
|
|
died out then, and he departed upon the quest again.
|
|
'And old Sanctum Sanctorum was truly sorry your Highness came
|
|
not back,' said Hendon; 'I saw it in his face.'
|
|
'Marry, I will never doubt that!' said the king- and then told his
|
|
own story; after which Hendon was sorry he had not destroyed the
|
|
archangel.
|
|
During the last day of the trip, Hendon's spirits were soaring.
|
|
His tongue ran constantly. He talked about his old father, and his
|
|
brother Arthur, and told of many things which illustrated their high
|
|
and generous characters; he went into loving frenzies over his
|
|
Edith, and was so glad-hearted that he was even able to say some
|
|
gentle and brotherly things about Hugh. He dwelt a deal on the
|
|
coming meeting at Hendon Hall; what a surprise it would be to
|
|
everybody, and what an outburst of thanksgiving and delight there
|
|
would be.
|
|
It was a fair region, dotted with cottages and orchards, and the
|
|
road led through broad pasture-lands whose receding expanses, marked
|
|
with gentle elevations and depressions, suggested the swelling and
|
|
subsiding undulations of the sea. In the afternoon the returning
|
|
prodigal made constant deflections from his course to see if by
|
|
ascending some hillock he might not pierce the distance and catch a
|
|
glimpse of his home. At last he was successful, and cried out
|
|
excitedly:
|
|
'There is the village, my prince, and there is the Hall close
|
|
by! You may see the towers from here; and that wood there- that is
|
|
my father's park. Ah, now thou'lt know what state and grandeur be! A
|
|
house with seventy rooms- think of that!- and seven and twenty
|
|
servants! A brave lodging for such as we, is it not so? Come, let us
|
|
speed- my impatience will not brook further delay.'
|
|
All possible hurry was made; still, it was after three o'clock
|
|
before the village was reached. The travelers scampered through it,
|
|
Hendon's tongue going all the time. 'Here is the church- covered
|
|
with the same ivy- none gone, none added.' 'Yonder is the inn, the old
|
|
Red Lion- and yonder is the market-place.' 'Here is the Maypole, and
|
|
here the pump- nothing is altered; nothing but the people, at any
|
|
rate; ten years make a change in people; some of these I seem to know,
|
|
but none know me.' So his chat ran on. The end of the village was soon
|
|
reached; then the travelers struck into a crooked, narrow road, walled
|
|
in with tall hedges, and hurried briskly along it for a half-mile,
|
|
then passed into a vast flower-garden through an imposing gateway
|
|
whose huge stone pillars bore sculptured armorial devices. A noble
|
|
mansion was before them.
|
|
'Welcome to Hendon Hall, my king!' exclaimed Miles. 'Ah, 'tis a
|
|
great day! My father and my brother and the Lady Edith will be so
|
|
mad with joy that they will have eyes and tongue for none but me in
|
|
the first transports of the meeting, and so thou'lt seem but coldly
|
|
welcomed- but mind it not; 'twill soon seem otherwise; for when I
|
|
say thou art my ward, and tell them how costly is my love for thee,
|
|
thou'lt see them take thee to their breasts for Miles Hendon's sake,
|
|
and make their house and hearts thy home forever after!'
|
|
The next moment Hendon sprang to the ground before the great door,
|
|
helped the king down, then took him by the hand and rushed within. A
|
|
few steps brought him to a spacious apartment; he entered, seated
|
|
the king with more hurry than ceremony, then ran toward a young man
|
|
who sat at a writing-table in front of a generous fire of logs.
|
|
'Embrace me, Hugh,' he cried, 'and say thou'rt glad I am come
|
|
again! and call our father, for home is not home till I shall touch
|
|
his hand, and see his face, and hear his voice once more!'
|
|
But Hugh only drew back, after betraying a momentary surprise, and
|
|
bent a grave stare upon the intruder- a stare which indicated somewhat
|
|
of offended dignity at first, then changed, in response to some inward
|
|
thought or purpose, to an expression of marveling curiosity, mixed
|
|
with a real or assumed compassion. Presently he said, in a mild voice:
|
|
'Thy wits seem touched, poor stranger; doubtless thou hast
|
|
suffered privations and rude buffetings at the world's hands; thy
|
|
looks and dress betoken it. Whom dost thou take me to be?'
|
|
'Take thee? Prithee, for whom else than whom thou art? I take thee
|
|
to be Hugh Hendon,' said Miles, sharply.
|
|
The other continued, in the same soft tone:
|
|
'And whom dost thou imagine thyself to be?'
|
|
'Imagination hath naught to do with it! Dost thou pretend thou
|
|
knowest me not for thy brother Miles Hendon?'
|
|
An expression of pleased surprise flitted across Hugh's face,
|
|
and he exclaimed:
|
|
'What! thou art not jesting! can the dead come to life? God be
|
|
praised if it be so! Our poor lost boy restored to our arms after
|
|
all these cruel years! Ah, it seems too good to be true, it is too
|
|
good to be true- I charge thee, have pity, do not trifle with me!
|
|
Quick- come to the light- let me scan thee well!'
|
|
He seized Miles by the arm, dragged him to the window, and began
|
|
to devour him from head to foot with his eyes, turning him this way
|
|
and that, and stepping briskly around him and about him to prove him
|
|
from all points of view; whilst the returned prodigal, all aglow
|
|
with gladness, smiled, laughed, and kept nodding his head and saying:
|
|
'Go on, brother, go on, and fear not; thou'lt find nor limb nor
|
|
feature that cannot bide the test. Scour and scan me to thy content,
|
|
my dear old Hugh- I am indeed thy old Miles, thy same old Miles, thy
|
|
lost brother, is't not so? Ah, 'tis a great day- I said 'twas a
|
|
great day! Give me thy hand, give me thy cheek- lord, I am like to die
|
|
of very joy!'
|
|
He was about to throw himself upon his brother; but Hugh put up
|
|
his hand in dissent, then dropped his chin mournfully upon his breast,
|
|
saying with emotion:
|
|
'Ah, God of his mercy give me strength to bear this grievous
|
|
disappointment!'
|
|
Miles, amazed, could not speak for a moment; then he found his
|
|
tongue, and cried out:
|
|
'What disappointment? Am I not thy brother?'
|
|
Hugh shook his head sadly, and said:
|
|
'I pray heaven it may prove so, and that other eyes may find the
|
|
resemblances that are hid from mine. Alack, I fear me the letter spoke
|
|
but too truly.'
|
|
'What letter?'
|
|
'One that came from oversea, some six or seven years ago. It
|
|
said my brother died in battle.'
|
|
'It was a lie! Call thy father- he will know me.'
|
|
'One may not call the dead.'
|
|
'Dead?' Miles's voice was subdued, and his lips trembled. 'My
|
|
father dead!- oh, this is heavy news. Half my new joy is withered now.
|
|
Prithee, let me see my brother Arthur- he will know me; he will know
|
|
me and console me.'
|
|
'He, also, is dead.'
|
|
'God be merciful to me, a stricken man! Gone- both gone- the
|
|
worthy taken and the worthless spared in me! Ah! I crave your
|
|
mercy!- do not say the Lady Edith-'
|
|
'Is dead? No, she lives.'
|
|
'Then God be praised, my joy is whole again! Speed thee,
|
|
brother- let her come to me! An she say I am not myself- but she
|
|
will not; no, no, she will know me, I were a fool to doubt it. Bring
|
|
her- bring the old servants; they, too, will know me.'
|
|
'All are gone but five- Peter, Halsey, David, Bernard, and
|
|
Margaret.'
|
|
So saying, Hugh left the room. Miles stood musing awhile, then
|
|
began to walk the floor, muttering:
|
|
'The five arch villains have survived the two-and-twenty leal
|
|
and honest- 'tis an odd thing.'
|
|
He continued walking back and forth, muttering to himself; he
|
|
had forgotten the king entirely. By and by his majesty said gravely,
|
|
and with a touch of genuine compassion, though the words themselves
|
|
were capable of being interpreted ironically:
|
|
'Mind not thy mischance, good man; there be others in the world
|
|
whose identity is denied, and whose claims are derided. Thou hast
|
|
company.'
|
|
'Ah, my king,' cried Hendon, coloring slightly, 'do not thou
|
|
condemn me- wait, and thou shalt see. I am no impostor- she will say
|
|
it; you shall hear it from the sweetest lips in England. I an
|
|
impostor? Why I know this old hall, these pictures of my ancestors,
|
|
and all these things that are about us, as a child knoweth its own
|
|
nursery. Here was I born and bred, my lord; I speak the truth; I would
|
|
not deceive thee; and should none else believe, I pray thee do not
|
|
thou doubt me- I could not bear it.'
|
|
'I do not doubt thee,' said the king, with a childlike
|
|
simplicity and faith.
|
|
'I thank thee out of my heart!' exclaimed Hendon, with a
|
|
fervency which showed that he was touched. The king added, with the
|
|
same gentle simplicity:
|
|
'Dost thou doubt me?'
|
|
A guilty confusion seized upon Hendon, and he was grateful that
|
|
the door opened to admit Hugh, at that moment, and saved him the
|
|
necessity of replying.
|
|
A beautiful lady, richly clothed, followed Hugh, and after her
|
|
came several liveried servants. The lady walked slowly, with her
|
|
head bowed and her eyes fixed upon the floor. The face was unspeakably
|
|
sad. Miles Hendon sprang forward, crying out:
|
|
'Oh, my Edith, my darling-'
|
|
But Hugh waved him back, gravely, and said to the lady:
|
|
'Look upon him. Do you know him?'
|
|
At the sound of Miles's voice the woman had started slightly,
|
|
and her cheeks had flushed; she was trembling now. She stood still,
|
|
during an impressive pause of several moments; then slowly lifted up
|
|
her head and looked into Hendon's eyes with a stony and frightened
|
|
gaze; the blood sank out of her face, drop by drop, till nothing
|
|
remained but the gray pallor of death; then she said, in a voice as
|
|
dead as the face, 'I know him not!' and turned, with a moan and
|
|
stifled sob, and tottered out of the room.
|
|
Miles Hendon sank into a chair and covered his face with his
|
|
hands. After a pause, his brother said to the servants:
|
|
'You have observed him. Do you know him?'
|
|
They shook their heads; then the master said:
|
|
'The servants know you not, sir. I fear there is some mistake. You
|
|
have seen that my wife knew you not.'
|
|
'Thy wife!' In an instant Hugh was pinned to the wall, with an
|
|
iron grip about his throat. 'Oh, thou fox-hearted slave, I see it all!
|
|
Thou'st writ the lying letter thyself, and my stolen bride and goods
|
|
are its fruit. There- now get thee gone, lest I shame mine honorable
|
|
soldiership with the slaying of so pitiful a manikin!'
|
|
Hugh, red-faced and almost suffocated, reeled to the nearest
|
|
chair, and commanded the servants to seize and bind the murderous
|
|
stranger. They hesitated, and one of them said:
|
|
'He is armed, Sir Hugh, and we are weaponless.'
|
|
'Armed? What of it, and ye so many? Upon him, I say!'
|
|
But Miles warned them to be careful what they did, and added:
|
|
'Ye know me of old- I have not changed; come oh, an it like you.'
|
|
This reminder did not hearten the servants much; they still held
|
|
back.
|
|
'Then go, ye paltry cowards, and arm yourselves and guard the
|
|
doors, while I send one to fetch the watch,' said Hugh. He turned,
|
|
at the threshold, and said to Miles, 'You'll find it to your advantage
|
|
to offend not with useless endeavours at escape.'
|
|
'Escape? Spare thyself discomfort, an that is all that troubles
|
|
thee. For Miles Hendon is master of Hendon Hall and all its
|
|
belongings. He will remain- doubt it not.'
|
|
CHAPTER XXVI
|
|
Disowned
|
|
|
|
THE king sat musing a few moments, then looked up and said:
|
|
''Tis strange- most strange. I cannot account for it.'
|
|
'No, it is not strange, my liege. I know him, and this conduct
|
|
is but natural. He was a rascal from his birth.'
|
|
'Oh, I spake not of him, Sir Miles.'
|
|
'Not of him? Then of what? What is it that is strange?'
|
|
'That the king is not missed.'
|
|
'How? Which? I doubt I do not understand.'
|
|
'Indeed! Doth it not strike you as being passing strange that
|
|
the land is not filled with couriers and proclamations describing my
|
|
person and making search for me? Is it no matter for commotion and
|
|
distress that the head of the state is gone?- that I am vanished
|
|
away and lost?'
|
|
'Most true, my king, I had forgot.' Then Hendon sighed, and
|
|
muttered to himself. 'Poor ruined mind- still busy with its pathetic
|
|
dream.'
|
|
'But I have a plan that shall right us both. I will write a paper,
|
|
in three tongues- Latin, Greek, and English- and thou shall haste away
|
|
with it to London in the morning. Give it to none but my uncle, the
|
|
Lord Hertford; when he shall see it, he will know and say I wrote
|
|
it. Then he will send for me.'
|
|
'Might it not be best, my prince, that we wait here until I
|
|
prove myself and make my rights secure to my domains? I should be so
|
|
much the better able then to-'
|
|
The king interrupted him imperiously:
|
|
'Peace! What are thy paltry domains, thy trivial interests,
|
|
contrasted with matters which concern the weal of a nation and the
|
|
integrity of a throne!' Then he added, in a gentle voice, as if he
|
|
were sorry for his severity, 'Obey and have no fear; I will right
|
|
thee, I will make thee whole- yes, more than whole. I shall
|
|
remember, and requite.'
|
|
So saying, he took the pen, and set himself to work. Hendon
|
|
contemplated him lovingly awhile, then said to himself:
|
|
'An it were dark, I should think it was a king that spoke; there's
|
|
no denying it, when the humor's upon him he doth thunder and lighten
|
|
like your true king- now where got he that trick? See him scribble and
|
|
scratch away contentedly at his meaningless pot-hooks, fancying them
|
|
to be Latin and Greek- and except my wit shall serve me with a lucky
|
|
device for diverting him from his purpose, I shall be forced to
|
|
pretend to post away to-morrow on this wild errand which he hath
|
|
invented for me.'
|
|
The next moment Sir Miles's thoughts had gone back to the recent
|
|
episode. So absorbed was he in his musings, that when the king
|
|
presently handed him the paper which he had been writing, he
|
|
received it and pocketed it without being conscious of the act. 'How
|
|
marvelous strange she acted,' he muttered. 'I think she knew me- and I
|
|
think she did not know me. These opinions do conflict, I perceive it
|
|
plainly; I cannot reconcile them, neither can I, by argument,
|
|
dismiss either of the two, or even persuade one to outweigh the other.
|
|
The matter standeth simply thus: she must have known my face, my
|
|
figure, my voice, for how could it be otherwise? yet she said she knew
|
|
me not, and that is proof perfect, for she cannot lie. But stop- I
|
|
think I begin to see. Peradventure he hath influenced her- commanded
|
|
her-compelled her to lie. That is the solution! The riddle is
|
|
unriddled. She seemed dead with fear- yes, she was under his
|
|
compulsion. I will seek her; I will find her; now that he is away, she
|
|
will speak her true mind. She will remember the old times when we were
|
|
little playfellows together, and this will soften her heart, and she
|
|
will no more betray me, but will confess me. There is no treacherous
|
|
blood in her- no, she was always honest and true. She has loved me
|
|
in those old days- this is my security; for whom one has loved, one
|
|
cannot betray.'
|
|
He stepped eagerly toward the door; at that moment it opened,
|
|
and the Lady Edith entered. She was very pale, but she walked with a
|
|
firm step, and her carriage was full of grace and gentle dignity.
|
|
Her face was as sad as before.
|
|
Miles sprang forward, with a happy confidence, to meet her, but
|
|
she checked him with a hardly perceptible gesture, and he stopped
|
|
where he was. She seated herself, and asked him to do likewise. Thus
|
|
simply did she take the sense of old-comradeship out of him, and
|
|
transform him into a stranger and a guest. The surprise of it, the
|
|
bewildering unexpectedness of it, made him begin to question, for a
|
|
moment, if he was the person he was pretending to be, after all. The
|
|
Lady Edith said:
|
|
'Sir, I have come to warn you. The mad cannot be persuaded out
|
|
of their delusions, perchance; but doubtless they may be persuaded
|
|
to avoid perils. I think this dream of yours hath the seeming of
|
|
honest truth to you, and therefore is not criminal- but do not tarry
|
|
here with it; for here it is dangerous.' She looked steadily into
|
|
Miles's face a moment, then added, impressively, 'It is the more
|
|
dangerous for that you are much like what our lost lad must have grown
|
|
to be, if he had lived.'
|
|
'Heavens, madam, but I am he!'
|
|
'I truly think you think it, sir. I question not your honesty in
|
|
that- I but warn you, that is all. My husband is master in this
|
|
region; his power hath hardly any limit; the people prosper or starve,
|
|
as he wills. If you resembled not the man whom you profess to be, my
|
|
husband might bid you pleasure yourself with your dream in peace;
|
|
but trust me, I know him well, I know what he will do; he will say
|
|
to all that you are but a mad impostor, and straightway all will
|
|
echo him.' She bent upon Miles that same steady look once more, and
|
|
added: 'If you were Miles Hendon, and he knew it and all the region
|
|
knew it- consider what I am saying, weigh it well- you would stand
|
|
in the same peril, your punishment would be no less sure; he would
|
|
deny you and denounce you, and none would be bold enough to give you
|
|
countenance.'
|
|
'Most truly I believe it,' said Miles, bitterly. 'The power that
|
|
can command one lifelong friend to betray and disown another, and be
|
|
obeyed, may well look to be obeyed in quarters where bread and life
|
|
are on the stake and no cobweb ties of loyalty and honor are
|
|
concerned.'
|
|
A faint tinge appeared for a moment in the lady's cheek, and she
|
|
dropped her eyes to the floor; but her voice betrayed no emotion
|
|
when she proceeded:
|
|
'I have warned you, I must still warn you, to go hence. This man
|
|
will destroy you else. He is a tyrant who knows no pity. I, who am his
|
|
fettered slave, know this. Poor Miles, and Arthur, and my dear
|
|
guardian, Sir Richard, are free of him, and at rest- better that you
|
|
were with them than that you bide here in the clutches of this
|
|
miscreant. Your pretensions are a menace to his title and possessions;
|
|
you have assaulted him in his own house- you are ruined if you stay.
|
|
Go- do not hesitate. If you lack money, take this purse, I beg of you,
|
|
and bribe the servants to let you pass. Oh, be warned, poor soul,
|
|
and escape while you may.'
|
|
Miles declined the purse with a gesture, and rose up and stood
|
|
before her.
|
|
'Grant me one thing,' he said. 'Let your eyes rest upon mine, so
|
|
that I may see if they be steady. There- now answer me. Am I Miles
|
|
Hendon?'
|
|
'No. I know you not.'
|
|
'Swear it!'
|
|
The answer was low, but distinct:
|
|
'I swear.'
|
|
'Oh, this passes belief!'
|
|
'Fly! Why will you waste the precious time? Fly and save
|
|
yourself.'
|
|
At that moment the officers burst into the room and a violent
|
|
struggle began; but Hendon was soon overpowered and dragged away.
|
|
The king was taken also, and both were bound and led to prison.
|
|
CHAPTER XXVII
|
|
In Prison
|
|
|
|
THE cells were all crowded; so the two friends were chained in a
|
|
large room where persons charged with trifling offenses were
|
|
commonly kept. They had company, for there were some twenty manacled
|
|
or fettered prisoners here, of both sexes and of varying ages- an
|
|
obscene and noisy gang. The king chafed bitterly over the stupendous
|
|
indignity thus put upon his royalty, but Hendon was moody and
|
|
taciturn. He was pretty thoroughly bewildered. He had come home, a
|
|
jubilant prodigal, expecting to find everybody wild with joy over
|
|
his return; and instead had got the cold shoulder and a jail. The
|
|
promise and the fulfilment differed so widely, that the effect was
|
|
stunning; he could not decide whether it was most tragic or most
|
|
grotesque. He felt much as a man might who had danced blithely out
|
|
to enjoy a rainbow, and got struck by lightning.
|
|
But gradually his confused and tormenting thoughts settled down
|
|
into some sort of order, and then his mind centered itself upon Edith.
|
|
He turned her conduct over, and examined it in all lights, but he
|
|
could not make anything satisfactory out of it. Did she know him?-
|
|
or didn't she know him? It was a perplexing puzzle, and occupied him a
|
|
long time; but he ended, finally, with the conviction that she did
|
|
know him, and had repudiated him for interested reasons. He wanted
|
|
to load her name with curses now; but this name had so long been
|
|
sacred to him that he found he could not bring his tongue to profane
|
|
it.
|
|
Wrapped in prison blankets of a soiled and tattered condition,
|
|
Hendon and the king passed a troubled night. For a bribe the jailer
|
|
had furnished liquor to some of the prisoners; singing of ribald
|
|
songs, fighting, shouting, and carousing, was the natural consequence.
|
|
At last, awhile after midnight, a man attacked a woman and nearly
|
|
killed her by beating her over the head with his manacles before the
|
|
jailer could come to the rescue. The jailer restored peace by giving
|
|
the man a sound clubbing about the head and shoulders- then the
|
|
carousing ceased; and after that, all had an opportunity to sleep
|
|
who did not mind the annoyance of the moanings and groanings of the
|
|
two wounded people.
|
|
During the ensuing week, the days and nights were of a
|
|
monotonous sameness, as to events; men whose faces Hendon remembered
|
|
more or less distinctly came, by day, to gaze at the 'impostor' and
|
|
repudiate and insult him; and by night the carousing and brawling went
|
|
on, with symmetrical regularity. However, there was a change of
|
|
incident at last. The jailer brought in an old man, and said to him:
|
|
'The villain is in this room- cast thy old eyes about and see if
|
|
thou canst say which is he.'
|
|
Hendon glanced up, and experienced a pleasant sensation for the
|
|
first time since he had been in the jail. He said to himself, 'This is
|
|
Blake Andrews, a servant all his life in my father's family- a good
|
|
honest soul, with a right heart in his breast. That is, formerly.
|
|
But none are true now; all are liars. This man will know me- and
|
|
will deny me, too, like the rest.'
|
|
The old man gazed around the room, glanced at each face in turn,
|
|
and finally said:
|
|
'I see none here but paltry knaves, scum o' the streets. Which
|
|
is he?'
|
|
The jailer laughed.
|
|
'Here,' he said; 'scan this big animal, and grant me an opinion.'
|
|
The old man approached, and looked Hendon over, long and
|
|
earnestly, then shook his head and said:
|
|
'Marry, this is no Hendon- nor ever was!'
|
|
'Right! Thy old eyes are sound yet. An I were Sir Hugh, I would
|
|
take the shabby carle and-'
|
|
The jailer finished by lifting himself a-tiptoe with an
|
|
imaginary halter, at the same time making a gurgling noise in his
|
|
throat suggestive of suffocation. The old man said, vindictively:
|
|
'Let him bless God an he fare no worse. An I had the handling o'
|
|
the villain, he should roast, or I am no true man!'
|
|
The jailer laughed a pleasant hyena laugh, and said:
|
|
'Give him a piece of thy mind, old man- they all do it. Thou'lt
|
|
find it good diversion.'
|
|
Then he sauntered toward his anteroom and disappeared. The old man
|
|
dropped upon his knees and whispered:
|
|
'God be thanked, thou'rt come again, my master! I believed thou
|
|
wert dead these seven years, and lo, here thou art alive! I knew
|
|
thee the moment I saw thee; and main hard work it was to keep a
|
|
stony countenance and seem to see none here but tuppenny knaves and
|
|
rubbish o' the streets. I am old and poor, Sir Miles; but say the word
|
|
and I will go forth and proclaim the truth though I be strangled for
|
|
it.'
|
|
'No,' said Hendon, 'thou shalt not. It would ruin thee, and yet
|
|
help but little in my cause. But I thank thee; for thou hast given
|
|
me back somewhat of my lost faith in my kind.'
|
|
The old servant became very valuable to Hendon and the king; for
|
|
he dropped in several times a day to 'abuse' the former, and always
|
|
smuggled in a few delicacies to help out the prison bill of fare; he
|
|
also furnished the current news. Hendon reserved the dainties for
|
|
the king; without them his majesty might not have survived, for he was
|
|
not able to eat the coarse and wretched food provided by the jailer.
|
|
Andrews was obliged to confine himself to brief visits, in order to
|
|
avoid suspicion; but he managed to impart a fair degree of information
|
|
each time- information delivered in a low voice, for Hendon's benefit,
|
|
and interlarded with insulting epithets delivered in a louder voice,
|
|
for the benefit of other hearers.
|
|
So, little by little, the story of the family came out. Arthur had
|
|
been dead six years. This loss, with the absence of news from
|
|
Hendon, impaired his father's health; he believed he was going to die,
|
|
and he wished to see Hugh and Edith settled in life before he passed
|
|
away; but Edith begged hard for delay, hoping for Miles's return; then
|
|
the letter came which brought the news of Miles's death; the shock
|
|
prostrated Sir Richard; he believed his end was very near, and he
|
|
and Hugh insisted upon the marriage; Edith begged for and obtained a
|
|
month's respite; then another, and finally a third; the marriage
|
|
then took place, by the death-bed of Sir Richard. It had not proved
|
|
a happy one. It was whispered about the country that shortly after the
|
|
nuptials the bride found among her husband's papers several rough
|
|
and incomplete drafts of the fatal letter, and had accused him of
|
|
precipitating the marriage- and Sir Richard's death, too- by a
|
|
wicked forgery. Tales of cruelty to the Lady Edith and the servants
|
|
were to be heard on all hands; and since the father's death Sir Hugh
|
|
had thrown off all soft disguises and become a pitiless master
|
|
toward all who in any way depended upon him and his domains for bread.
|
|
There was a bit of Andrews's gossip which the king listened to
|
|
with a lively interest:
|
|
'There is rumor that the king is mad. But in charity forbear to
|
|
say I mentioned it, for 'tis death to speak of it, they say.'
|
|
His majesty glared at the old man and said:
|
|
'The king is not mad, good man- and thou'lt find it to thy
|
|
advantage to busy thyself with matters that nearer concern thee than
|
|
this seditious prattle.'
|
|
'What doth the lad mean?' said Andrews, surprised at this brisk
|
|
assault from such an unexpected quarter. Hendon gave him a sign, and
|
|
he did not pursue his question, but went on with his budget:
|
|
'The late king is to be buried at Windsor in a day or two- the
|
|
sixteenth of the month- and the new king will be crowned at
|
|
Westminster the twentieth.'
|
|
'Methinks they must needs find him first,' muttered his majesty;
|
|
then added, confidently, 'but they will look to that- and so also
|
|
shall I.'
|
|
'In the name of-'
|
|
But the old man got no further- a warning sign from Hendon checked
|
|
his remark. He resumed the thread of his gossip.
|
|
'Sir Hugh goeth to the coronation- and with grand hopes. He
|
|
confidently looketh to come back a peer, for he is high in favor
|
|
with the Lord Protector.'
|
|
'What Lord Protector?' asked his majesty.
|
|
'His grace the Duke of Somerset.'
|
|
'What Duke of Somerset?'
|
|
'Marry, there is but one- Seymour, Earl of Hertford.'
|
|
The king asked sharply:
|
|
'Since when is he a duke, and Lord Protector?'
|
|
'Since the last day of January.'
|
|
'And, prithee, who made him so?'
|
|
'Himself and the Great Council- with the help of the king.'
|
|
His majesty started violently. 'The king!' he cried. 'What king,
|
|
good sir?'
|
|
'What king, indeed! (God-a-mercy, what aileth the boy?) Sith we
|
|
have but one, 'tis not difficult to answer- his most sacred majesty
|
|
King Edward the Sixth- whom God preserve! Yea, and a dear and gracious
|
|
little urchin is he, too; and whether he be mad or no- and they say he
|
|
mendeth daily- his praises are on all men's lips; and all bless him
|
|
likewise, and offer prayers that he may be spared to reign long in
|
|
England; for he began humanely, with saving the old Duke of
|
|
Norfolk's life, and now is he bent on destroying the cruelest of the
|
|
laws that harry and oppress the people.'
|
|
This news struck his majesty dumb with amazement, and plunged
|
|
him into so deep and dismal a reverie that he heard no more of the old
|
|
man's gossip. He wondered if the 'little urchin' was the beggar-boy
|
|
whom he left dressed in his own garments in the palace. It did not
|
|
seem possible that this could be, for surely his manners and speech
|
|
would betray him if he pretended to be the Prince of Wales- then he
|
|
would be driven out, and search made for the true prince. Could it
|
|
be that the court had set up some sprig of the nobility in his
|
|
place? No, for his uncle would not allow that- he was all-powerful and
|
|
could and would crush such a movement, of course. The boy's musings
|
|
profited him nothing; the more he tried to unriddle the mystery the
|
|
more perplexed he became, the more his head ached, and the worse he
|
|
slept. His impatience to get to London grew hourly, and his
|
|
captivity became almost unendurable.
|
|
Hendon's arts all failed with the king- he could not be comforted,
|
|
but a couple of women who were chained near him, succeeded better.
|
|
Under their gentle ministrations he found peace and learned a degree
|
|
of patience. He was very grateful, and came to love them dearly and to
|
|
delight in the sweet and soothing influence of their presence. He
|
|
asked them why they were in prison, and when they said they were
|
|
Baptists, he smiled, and inquired:
|
|
'Is that a crime to be shut up for in a prison? Now I grieve,
|
|
for I shall lose ye- they will not keep ye long for such a little
|
|
thing.'
|
|
They did not answer; and something in their faces made him uneasy.
|
|
He said, eagerly:
|
|
'You do not speak- be good to me, and tell me- there will be no
|
|
other punishment? Prithee, tell me there is no fear of that.'
|
|
They tried to change the topic, but his fears were aroused, and he
|
|
pursued it:
|
|
'Will they scourge thee? No, no, they would not be so cruel! Say
|
|
they would not. Come, they will not, will they?'
|
|
The women betrayed confusion and distress, but there was no
|
|
avoiding an answer, so one of them said, in a voice choked with
|
|
emotion:
|
|
'Oh, thou'lt break our hearts, thou gentle spirit! God will help
|
|
us to bear our-'
|
|
'It is a confession!' the king broke in. 'Then they will scourge
|
|
thee, the stony-hearted wretches! But oh, thou must not weep, I cannot
|
|
bear it. Keep up thy courage- I shall come to my own in time to save
|
|
thee from this bitter thing, and I will do it!'
|
|
When the king awoke in the morning, the women were gone.
|
|
'They are saved!' he said, joyfully; then added, despondently,
|
|
'but woe is me!- for they were my comforters.'
|
|
Each of them had left a shred of ribbon pinned to his clothing, in
|
|
token of remembrance. He said he would keep these things always; and
|
|
that soon he would seek out these dear good friends of his and take
|
|
them under his protection.
|
|
Just then the jailer came in with some subordinates and
|
|
commanded that the prisoners be conducted to the jail-yard. The king
|
|
was overjoyed- it would be a blessed thing to see the blue sky and
|
|
breathe the fresh air once more. He fretted and chafed at the slowness
|
|
of the officers, but his turn came at last and he was released from
|
|
his staple and ordered to follow the other prisoners, with Hendon.
|
|
The court, or quadrangle, was stone-paved, and open to the sky.
|
|
The prisoners entered it through a massive archway of masonry, and
|
|
were placed in file, standing, with their backs against the wall. A
|
|
rope was stretched in front of them, and they were also guarded by
|
|
their officers. It was a chill and lowering morning, and a light
|
|
snow which had fallen during the night whitened the great empty
|
|
space and added to the general dismalness of its aspect. Now and
|
|
then a wintry wind shivered through the place and sent the snow
|
|
eddying hither and thither.
|
|
In the center of the court stood two women, chained to posts. A
|
|
glance showed the king that these were his good friends. He shuddered,
|
|
and said to himself, 'Alack, they are not gone free, as I had thought.
|
|
To think that such as these should know the lash!- in England! Ay,
|
|
there's the shame of it- not in Heathenesse, but Christian England!
|
|
They will be scourged; and I, whom they have comforted and kindly
|
|
entreated, must look on and see the great wrong done; it is strange,
|
|
so strange! that I, the very source of power in this broad realm, am
|
|
helpless to protect them. But let these miscreants look well to
|
|
themselves, for there is a day coming when I will require of them a
|
|
heavy reckoning for this work. For every blow they strike now they
|
|
shall feel a hundred then.'
|
|
A great gate swung open and a crowd of citizens poured in. They
|
|
flocked around the two women, and hid them from the king's view. A
|
|
clergyman entered and passed through the crowd, and he also was
|
|
hidden. The king now heard talking, back and forth, as if questions
|
|
were being asked and answered, but he could not make out what was
|
|
said. Next there was a deal of bustle and preparation, and much
|
|
passing and repassing of officials through that part of the crowd that
|
|
stood on the further side of the women; and while this proceeded a
|
|
deep hush gradually fell upon the people.
|
|
Now, by command, the masses parted and fell aside, and the king
|
|
saw a spectacle that froze the marrow in his bones. Fagots had been
|
|
piled about the two women, and a kneeling man was lighting them!
|
|
The women bowed their heads, and covered their faces with their
|
|
hands; the yellow flames began to climb upward among the snapping
|
|
and crackling fagots, and wreaths of blue smoke to stream away on
|
|
the wind; the clergyman lifted his hands and began a prayer- just then
|
|
two young girls came flying through the great gate, uttering
|
|
piercing screams, and threw themselves upon the women at the stake.
|
|
Instantly they were torn away by the officers, and one of them was
|
|
kept in a tight grip, but the other broke loose, saying she would
|
|
die with her mother; and before she could be stopped she had flung her
|
|
arms about her mother's neck again. She was torn away once more, and
|
|
with her gown on fire.
|
|
Two or three men held her, and the burning portion of her gown was
|
|
snatched off and thrown flaming aside, she struggling all the while to
|
|
free herself, and saying she would be alone in the world now, and
|
|
begging to be allowed to die with her mother. Both the girls
|
|
screamed continually, and fought for freedom; but suddenly this tumult
|
|
was drowned under a volley of heart-piercing shrieks of mortal
|
|
agony. The king glanced from the frantic girls to the stake, then
|
|
turned away and leaned his ashen face against the wall, and looked
|
|
no more. He said, 'That which I have seen, in that one little
|
|
moment, will never go out from my memory, but will abide there; and
|
|
I shall see it all the days, and dream of it all the nights, till I
|
|
die. Would God I had been blind!'
|
|
Hendon was watching the king. He said to himself, with
|
|
satisfaction, 'His disorder mendeth; he hath changed, and groweth
|
|
gentler. If he had followed his wont, he would have stormed at these
|
|
varlets, and said he was king, and commanded that the women be
|
|
turned loose unscathed. Soon his delusion will pass away and be
|
|
forgotten, and his poor mind will be whole again. God speed the day!'
|
|
That same day several prisoners were brought in to remain
|
|
overnight, who were being conveyed, under guard, to various places
|
|
in the kingdom, to undergo punishment for crimes committed. The king
|
|
conversed with these- he had made it a point, from the beginning, to
|
|
instruct himself for the kingly office by questioning prisoners
|
|
whenever the opportunity offered- and the tale of their woes wrung his
|
|
heart. One of them was a poor half-witted woman who had stolen a
|
|
yard or two of cloth from a weaver- she was to be hanged for it.
|
|
Another was a man who had been accused of stealing a horse; he said
|
|
the proof had failed, and he had imagined that he was safe from the
|
|
halter; but no- he was hardly free before he was arraigned for killing
|
|
a deer in the king's park; this was proved against him, and now he was
|
|
on his way to the gallows. There was a tradesman's apprentice whose
|
|
case particularly distressed the king; this youth said he found a hawk
|
|
one evening that had escaped from its owner, and he took it home
|
|
with him, imagining himself entitled to it; but the court convicted
|
|
him of stealing it, and sentenced him to death.
|
|
The king was furious over these inhumanities, and wanted Hendon to
|
|
break jail and fly with him to Westminster, so that he could mount his
|
|
throne and hold out his scepter in mercy over these unfortunate people
|
|
and save their lives. 'Poor child,' sighed Hendon, 'these woeful tales
|
|
have brought his malady upon him again- alack, but for this evil
|
|
hap, he would have been well in a little time.'
|
|
Among these prisoners was an old lawyer- a man with a strong
|
|
face and a dauntless mien, Three years past, he had written a pamphlet
|
|
against the Lord Chancellor, accusing him of injustice, and had been
|
|
punished for it by the loss of his ears in the pillory and degradation
|
|
from the bar, and in addition had been fined L3,000 and sentenced to
|
|
imprisonment for life. Lately he had repeated his offense; and in
|
|
consequence was now under sentence to lose what remained of his
|
|
ears, pay a fine of L5,000, be branded on both cheeks, and remain in
|
|
prison for life.
|
|
'These be honorable scars,' he said, and turned back his gray hair
|
|
and showed the mutilated stubs of what had once been his ears.
|
|
The king's eye burned with passion. He said:
|
|
'None believe in me- neither wilt thou. But no matter- within
|
|
the compass of a month thou shalt be free; and more, the laws that
|
|
have dishonored thee, and shamed the English name, shall be swept from
|
|
the statute-books. The world is made wrong, kings should go to
|
|
school to their own laws at times, and so learn mercy.'*(20)
|
|
CHAPTER XXVIII
|
|
The Sacrifice
|
|
|
|
MEANTIME Miles was growing sufficiently tired of confinment and
|
|
inaction. But now his trial came on, to his great gratification, and
|
|
he thought he could welcome any sentence provided a further
|
|
imprisonment should not be a part of it. But he was mistaken about
|
|
that. He was in a fine fury when he found himself described as a
|
|
'sturdy vagabond' and sentenced to sit two hours in the pillory for
|
|
bearing that character and for assaulting the master of Hendon Hall.
|
|
His pretensions as to brothership with his prosecutor, and rightful
|
|
heirship to the Hendon honors and estates, were left contemptuously
|
|
unnoticed, as being not even worth examination.
|
|
He raged and threatened on his way to punishment, but it did no
|
|
good; he was snatched roughly along by the officers, and got an
|
|
occasional cuff, besides, for his unreverent conduct.
|
|
The king could not pierce through the rabble that swarmed
|
|
behind; so he was obliged to follow in the rear, remote from his
|
|
good friend and servant. The king had been nearly condemned to the
|
|
stocks himself, for being in such bad company, but had been let off
|
|
with a lecture and a warning, in consideration of his youth. When
|
|
the crowd at last halted, he flitted feverishly from point to point
|
|
around its outer rim, hunting a place to get through; and at last,
|
|
after a deal of difficulty and delay, succeeded. There sat his poor
|
|
henchman in the degrading stocks, the sport and butt of a dirty mob-
|
|
he, the body servant of the king of England! Edward had heard the
|
|
sentence pronounced, but he had not realized the half that it meant.
|
|
His anger began to rise as the sense of this new indignity which had
|
|
been put upon him sank home; it jumped to summer heat the next moment,
|
|
when he saw an egg sail through the air and crush itself against
|
|
Hendon's cheek, and heard the crowd roar its enjoyment of the episode.
|
|
He sprang across the open circle and confronted the officer in charge,
|
|
crying:
|
|
'For shame! This is my servant- set him free! I am the-'
|
|
'Oh, peace!' exclaimed Hendon, in a panic, 'thou'lt destroy
|
|
thyself. Mind him not, officer, he is mad.'
|
|
'Give thyself no trouble as to the matter of minding him, good
|
|
man, I have small mind to mind him; but as to teaching him somewhat,
|
|
to that I am well inclined.' He turned to a subordinate and said,
|
|
'Give the little fool a taste or two of the lash, to mend his
|
|
manners.'
|
|
'Half a dozen will better serve his turn,' suggested Sir Hugh, who
|
|
had ridden up a moment before to take a passing glance at the
|
|
proceedings.
|
|
The king was seized. He did not even struggle, so paralyzed was he
|
|
with the mere thought of the monstrous outrage that was proposed to be
|
|
inflicted upon his sacred person. History was already defiled with the
|
|
record of the scourging of an English king with whips- it was an
|
|
intolerable reflection that he must furnish a duplicate of that
|
|
shameful page. He was in the toils, there was no help for him; he must
|
|
either take this punishment or beg for its remission. Hard conditions;
|
|
he would take the stripes- a king might do that, but a king could
|
|
not beg.
|
|
But meantime, Miles Hendon was resolving the difficulty. 'Let
|
|
the child go,' said he; 'ye heartless dogs, do ye not see how young
|
|
and frail he is? Let him go- I will take his lashes.'
|
|
'Marry, a good thought- and thanks for it,' said Sir Hugh, his
|
|
face lighting with a sardonic satisfaction. 'Let the little beggar go,
|
|
and give this fellow a dozen in his place- an honest dozen, well
|
|
laid on.' The king was in the act of entering a fierce protest, but
|
|
Sir Hugh silenced him with the potent remark, 'Yes, speak up, do,
|
|
and free thy mind- only, mark ye, that for each word you utter he
|
|
shall get six strokes the more.'
|
|
Hendon was removed from the stocks, and his back laid bare; and
|
|
while the lash was applied the poor little king turned away his face
|
|
and allowed unroyal tears to channel his cheeks unchecked. 'Ah,
|
|
brave good heart,' he said to himself, 'this loyal deed shall never
|
|
perish out of my memory. I will not forget it- and neither shall
|
|
they!' he added, with passion. While he mused, his appreciation of
|
|
Hendon's magnanimous conduct grew to greater and still greater
|
|
dimensions in his mind, and so also did his gratefulness for it.
|
|
Presently he said to himself, 'Who saves his prince from wounds and
|
|
possible death- and this he did for me- performs high service; but
|
|
it is little- it is nothing! -oh, less than nothing!- when 'tis
|
|
weighed against the act of him who saves his prince from SHAME!'
|
|
Hendon made no outcry under the scourge, but bore the heavy
|
|
blows with soldierly fortitude. This, together with his redeeming
|
|
the boy by taking his stripes for him, compelled the respect of even
|
|
that forlorn and degraded mob that was gathered there; and its gibes
|
|
and hootings died away, and no sound remained but the sound of the
|
|
falling blows. The stillness that pervaded the place when Hendon found
|
|
himself once more in the stocks, was in strong contrast with the
|
|
insulting clamour which had prevailed there so little a while before.
|
|
The king came softly to Hendon's side, and whispered in his ear:
|
|
'Kings cannot ennoble thee, thou good, great soul, for One who
|
|
is higher than kings hath done that for thee; but a king can confirm
|
|
thy nobility to men.' He picked up the scourge from the ground,
|
|
touched Hendon's bleeding shoulders lightly with it, and whispered,
|
|
'Edward of England dubs thee earl!'
|
|
Hendon was touched. The water welled to his eyes, yet at the
|
|
same time the grisly humor of the situation and circumstances so
|
|
undermined his gravity that it was all he could do to keep some sign
|
|
of his inward mirth from showing outside. To be suddenly hoisted,
|
|
naked and gory, from the common stocks to the Alpine altitude and
|
|
splendor of an earldom, seemed to him the last possibility in the line
|
|
of the grotesque. He said to himself, 'Now am I finely tinseled,
|
|
indeed! The specter-knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows is
|
|
become a specter-earl!- a dizzy flight for a callow wing! An this go
|
|
on, I shall presently be hung like a very May-pole with fantastic
|
|
gauds and make-believe honors. But I shall value them, all valueless
|
|
as they are, for the love that doth bestow them. Better these poor
|
|
mock dignities of mine, that come unasked from a clean hand and a
|
|
right spirit, than real ones bought by servility from grudging and
|
|
interested power.'
|
|
The dreaded Sir Hugh wheeled his horse about, and, as he spurred
|
|
away, the living wall divided silently to let him pass, and as
|
|
silently closed together again. And so remained; nobody went so far as
|
|
to venture a remark in favor of the prisoner, or in compliment to him;
|
|
but no matter, the absence of abuse was a sufficient homage in itself.
|
|
A late comer who was not posted as to the present circumstances, and
|
|
who delivered a sneer at the 'impostor' and was in the act of
|
|
following it with a dead cat, was promptly knocked down and kicked
|
|
out, without any words, and then the deep quiet resumed sway once
|
|
more.
|
|
CHAPTER XXIX
|
|
To London
|
|
|
|
WHEN Hendon's term of service in the stocks was finished, he was
|
|
released and ordered to quit the region and come back no more. His
|
|
sword was restored to him, and also his mule and his donkey. He
|
|
mounted and rode off, followed by the king, the crowd opening with
|
|
quiet respectfulness to let them pass, and then dispersing when they
|
|
were gone.
|
|
Hendon was soon absorbed in thought. There were questions of
|
|
high import to be answered. What should he do? Whither should he go?
|
|
Powerful help must be found somewhere, or he must relinquish his
|
|
inheritance and remain under the imputation of being an impostor
|
|
besides. Where could he hope to find this powerful help? Where,
|
|
indeed! It was a knotty question. By and by a thought occurred to
|
|
him which pointed to a possibility- the slenderest of slender
|
|
possibilities, certainly, but still worth considering, for lack of any
|
|
other that promised anything at all. He remembered what old Andrews
|
|
had said about the young king's goodness and his generous championship
|
|
of the wronged and unfortunate. Why not go and try to get speech of
|
|
him and beg for justice? Ah, yes, but could so fantastic a pauper
|
|
get admission to the august presence of a monarch? Never mind- let
|
|
that matter take care of itself; it was a bridge that would not need
|
|
to be crossed till he should come to it. He was an old campaigner, and
|
|
used to inventing shifts and expedients; no doubt he would be able
|
|
to find a way. Yes, he would strike for the capital. Maybe his
|
|
father's old friend, Sir Humphrey Marlow, would help him- 'good old
|
|
Sir Humphrey, Head Lieutenant of the late king's kitchen, or
|
|
stables, or something'- Miles could not remember just what or which.
|
|
Now that he had something to turn his energies to, a distinctly
|
|
defined object to accomplish, the fog of humiliation and depression
|
|
that had settled down upon his spirits lifted and blew away, and he
|
|
raised his head and looked about him. He was surprised to see how
|
|
far he had come; the village was away behind him. The king was jogging
|
|
along in his wake, with his head bowed; for he, too, was deep in plans
|
|
and thinkings. A sorrowful misgiving clouded Hendon's newborn
|
|
cheerfulness; would the boy be willing to go again to a city where,
|
|
during all his brief life, he had never known anything but ill usage
|
|
and pinching want? But the question must be asked; it could not be
|
|
avoided; so Hendon reined up, and called out:
|
|
'I had forgotten to inquire whither we are bound. Thy commands, my
|
|
liege?'
|
|
'To London!'
|
|
Hendon moved on again, mightily contented with the answer- but
|
|
astonished at it, too.
|
|
The whole journey was made without an adventure of importance.
|
|
But it ended with one. About ten o'clock on the night of the night
|
|
of the 19th of February, they stepped upon London Bridge, in the midst
|
|
of a writhing, struggling jam of howling and hurrahing people, whose
|
|
beer-jolly faces stood out strongly in the glare from manifold
|
|
torches- and at that instant the decaying head of some former duke
|
|
or other grandee tumbled down between them, striking Hendon on the
|
|
elbow and then bounding off among the hurrying confusion of feet. So
|
|
evanescent and unstable are men's works in this world!- the late
|
|
good king is but three weeks dead and three days in his grave, and
|
|
already the adornments which he took such pains to select from
|
|
prominent people for his noble bridge are falling. A citizen
|
|
stumbled over that head, and drove his own head into the back of
|
|
somebody in front of him, who turned and knocked down the first person
|
|
that came handy, and was promptly laid out himself by that person's
|
|
friend. It was the right ripe time for a free fight, for the
|
|
festivities of the morrow- Coronation Day- were already beginning;
|
|
everybody was full of strong drink and patriotism; within five minutes
|
|
the free fight was occupying a good deal of ground; within ten or
|
|
twelve it covered an acre or so, and was become a riot. By this time
|
|
Hendon and the king were hopelessly separated from each other and lost
|
|
in the rush and turmoil of the roaring masses of humanity. And so we
|
|
leave them.
|
|
CHAPTER XXX
|
|
Tom's Progress
|
|
|
|
WHILST the true king wandered about the land, poorly clad,
|
|
poorly fed, cuffed and derided by tramps one while, herding with
|
|
thieves and murderers in a jail another, and called idiot and impostor
|
|
by all impartially, the mock King Tom Canty enjoyed a quite
|
|
different experience.
|
|
When we saw him last, royalty was just beginning to have a
|
|
bright side for him. This bright side went on brightening more and
|
|
more every day; in a very little while it was become almost all
|
|
sunshine and delightfulness. He lost his fears; his misgivings faded
|
|
out and died; his embarrassments departed, and gave place to an easy
|
|
and confident bearing. He worked the whipping-boy mine to
|
|
ever-increasing profit.
|
|
He ordered my Lady Elizabeth and my Lady Jane Grey into his
|
|
presence when he wanted to play or talk, and dismissed them when he
|
|
was done with them, with the air of one familiarly accustomed to
|
|
such performances. It no longer confused him to have these lofty
|
|
personages kiss his hand at parting.
|
|
He came to enjoy being conducted to bed in state at night, and
|
|
dressed with intricate and solemn ceremony in the morning. It came
|
|
to be a proud pleasure to march to dinner attended by a glittering
|
|
procession of officers of state and gentlemen-at-arms; insomuch,
|
|
indeed, that he doubled his guard of gentlemen-at-arms, and made
|
|
them a hundred. He liked to hear the bugles sounding down the long
|
|
corridors, and the distant voices responding, 'Way for the King!'
|
|
He even learned to enjoy sitting in throned state in council,
|
|
and seeming to be something more than the Lord Protector's mouthpiece.
|
|
He liked to receive great ambassadors and their gorgeous trains, and
|
|
listen to the affectionate messages they brought from illustrious
|
|
monarchs who called him 'brother.' Oh, happy Tom Canty, late of
|
|
Offal Court!
|
|
He enjoyed his splendid clothes, and ordered more; he found his
|
|
four hundred servants too few for his proper grandeur, and trebled
|
|
them. The adulation of salaaming courtiers came to be sweet music to
|
|
his ears. He remained kind and gentle, and a sturdy and determined
|
|
champion of all that were oppressed, and he made tireless war upon
|
|
unjust laws; yet upon occasion, being offended, he could turn upon
|
|
an earl, or even a duke, and give him a look that would make him
|
|
tremble. Once, when his royal 'sister,' the grimly holy Lady Mary, set
|
|
herself to reason with him against the wisdom of his course in
|
|
pardoning so many people who would otherwise be jailed, or hanged,
|
|
or burned, and reminded him that their august late father's prisons
|
|
had sometimes contained as high as sixty thousand convicts at one
|
|
time, and that during his admirable reign he had delivered seventy-two
|
|
thousand thieves and robbers over to death by the executioner,*(21)
|
|
the boy was filled with generous indignation, and commanded her to
|
|
go to her closet, and beseech God to take away the stone that was in
|
|
her breast, and give her a human heart.
|
|
Did Tom Canty never feel troubled about the poor little rightful
|
|
prince who had treated him so kindly, and flown out with such hot zeal
|
|
to avenge him upon the insolent sentinel at the palace gate? Yes;
|
|
his first royal days and nights were pretty well sprinkled with
|
|
painful thoughts about the lost prince, and with sincere longings
|
|
for his return and happy restoration to his native rights and
|
|
splendors. But as time wore on, and the prince did not come, Tom's
|
|
mind became more and more occupied with his new and enchanting
|
|
experiences, and by little and little the vanished monarch faded
|
|
almost out of his thoughts; and finally, when he did intrude upon them
|
|
at intervals, he was become an unwelcome specter, for he made Tom feel
|
|
guilty and ashamed.
|
|
Tom's poor mother and sisters traveled the same road out of his
|
|
mind. At first he pined for them, sorrowed for them, longed to see
|
|
them; but later, the thought of their coming some day in their rags
|
|
and dirt, and betraying him with their kisses, and pulling him down
|
|
from his lofty place and dragging him back to penury and degradation
|
|
and the slums, made him shudder. At last they ceased to trouble his
|
|
thoughts almost wholly. And he was content, even glad; for, whenever
|
|
their mournful and accusing faces did rise before him now, they made
|
|
him feel more despicable than the worms that crawl.
|
|
At midnight of the 19th of February, Tom Canty was sinking to
|
|
sleep in his rich bed in the palace, guarded by his loyal vassals, and
|
|
surrounded by the pomps of royalty, a happy boy; for to-morrow was the
|
|
day appointed for his solemn crowning as king of England. At that same
|
|
hour, Edward, the true king, hungry and thirsty, soiled and
|
|
draggled, worn with travel, and clothed in rags and shreds- his
|
|
share of the results of the riot- was wedged in among a crowd of
|
|
people who were watching with deep interest certain hurrying gangs
|
|
of workmen who streamed in and out of Westminster Abbey, busy as ants;
|
|
they were making the last preparation for the royal coronation.
|
|
CHAPTER XXXI
|
|
The Recognition Procession
|
|
|
|
WHEN Tom Canty awoke the next morning, the air was heavy with a
|
|
thunderous murmur; all the distances were charged with it. It was
|
|
music to him; for it meant that the English world was out in its
|
|
strength to give loyal welcome to the great day.
|
|
Presently Tom found himself once more the chief figure in a
|
|
wonderful floating pageant on the Thames; for by ancient custom the
|
|
'recognition procession' through London must start from the Tower, and
|
|
he was bound thither.
|
|
When he arrived there, the sides of the venerable fortress
|
|
seemed suddenly rent in a thousand places, and from every rent
|
|
leaped a red tongue of flame and a white gush of smoke; a deafening
|
|
explosion followed, which drowned the shoutings of the multitude,
|
|
and made the ground tremble; the flame-jets, the smoke, and the
|
|
explosions were repeated over and over again with marvelous
|
|
celerity, so that in a few moments the old Tower disappeared in the
|
|
vast fog of its own smoke, all but the very top of the tall pile
|
|
called the White Tower; this, with its banners, stood out above the
|
|
dense bank of vapor as a mountain peak projects above a cloud-rack.
|
|
Tom Canty, splendidly arrayed, mounted a prancing war-steed, whose
|
|
rich trappings almost reached to the ground; his 'uncle,' the Lord
|
|
Protector Somerset, similarly mounted, took place in his rear; the
|
|
King's Guard formed in single ranks on either side, clad in
|
|
burnished armor; after the Protector followed a seemingly interminable
|
|
procession of resplendent nobles attended by their vassals; after
|
|
these came the lord mayor and the aldermanic body, in crimson velvet
|
|
robes, and with their gold chains across their breasts; and after
|
|
these the officers and members of all the guilds of London, in rich
|
|
raiment, and bearing the showy banners of the several corporations.
|
|
Also in the procession, as a special guard of honor through the
|
|
city, was the Ancient and Honorable Artillery Company- an organization
|
|
already three hundred years old at that time, and the only military
|
|
body in England possessing the privilege (which it still possesses
|
|
in our day) of holding itself independent of the commands of
|
|
Parliament. It was a brilliant spectacle, and was hailed with
|
|
acclamations all along the line, as it took its stately way through
|
|
the packed multitudes of citizens. The chronicler says, 'The king,
|
|
as he entered the city, was received by the people with prayers,
|
|
welcomings, cries, and tender words, and all signs which argue an
|
|
earnest love of subjects toward their sovereign; and the king, by
|
|
holding up his glad countenance to such as stood afar off, and most
|
|
tender language to those that stood nigh his Grace, showed himself
|
|
no less thankful to receive the people's good will than they to
|
|
offer it. To all that wished him well, he gave thanks. To such as bade
|
|
"God save his Grace," he said in return, "God save you all!" and added
|
|
that "he thanked them with all his heart." Wonderfully transported
|
|
were the people with the loving answers and gestures of their king.'
|
|
In Fenchurch Street a 'fair child, in costly apparel,' stood on
|
|
a stage to welcome his majesty to the city. The last verse of his
|
|
greeting was in these words:
|
|
|
|
Welcome, O King! as much as hearts can think;
|
|
Welcome again, as much as tongue can tell-
|
|
Welcome to joyous tongues, and hearts that will not shrink;
|
|
God thee preserve, we pray, and wish thee ever well.
|
|
|
|
The people burst forth in a glad shout, repeating with one voice
|
|
what the child had said. Tom Canty gazed abroad over the surging sea
|
|
of eager faces, and his heart swelled with exultation; and he felt
|
|
that the one thing worth living for in this world was to be a king,
|
|
and a nation's idol. Presently he caught sight, at a distance, of a
|
|
couple of his ragged Offal Court comrades- one of them the lord high
|
|
admiral in his late mimic court, the other the first lord of the
|
|
bedchamber in the same pretentious fiction; and his pride swelled
|
|
higher than ever. Oh, if they could only recognize him now! What
|
|
unspeakable glory it would be, if they could recognize him, and
|
|
realize that the derided mock king of the slums and back alleys was
|
|
become a real king, with illustrious dukes and princes for his
|
|
humble menials, and the English world at his feet! But he had to
|
|
deny himself, and choke down his desire, for such a recognition
|
|
might cost more than it would come to; so he turned away his head, and
|
|
left the two soiled lads to go on with their shoutings and glad
|
|
adulations, unsuspicious of whom it was they were lavishing them upon.
|
|
Every now and then rose the cry, 'A largess! a largess!' and Tom
|
|
responded by scattering a handful of bright new coins abroad for the
|
|
multitude to scramble for.
|
|
The chronicler says, 'At the upper end of Gracechurch Street,
|
|
before the sign of the Eagle, the city had erected a gorgeous arch,
|
|
beneath which was a stage, which stretched from one side of the street
|
|
to the other. This was a historical pageant, representing the king's
|
|
immediate progenitors. There sat Elizabeth of York in the midst of
|
|
an immense white rose, whose petals formed elaborate furbelows
|
|
around her; by her side was Henry VII, issuing out of a vast red rose,
|
|
disposed in the same manner; the hands of the royal pair were locked
|
|
together, and the wedding-ring ostentatiously displayed. From the
|
|
red and white roses proceeded a stem, which reached up to a second
|
|
stage, occupied by Henry VIII, issuing from a red-and-white rose, with
|
|
the effigy of the new king's mother, Jane Seymour, represented by
|
|
his side. One branch sprang from this pair, which mounted to a third
|
|
stage, where sat the effigy of Edward VI himself, enthroned in royal
|
|
majesty; and the whole pageant was framed with wreaths of roses, red
|
|
and white.'
|
|
This quaint and gaudy spectacle so wrought upon the rejoicing
|
|
people, that their acclamations utterly smothered the small voice of
|
|
the child whose business it was to explain the thing in eulogistic
|
|
rhymes. But Tom Canty was not sorry; for this loyal uproar was sweeter
|
|
music to him than any poetry, no matter what its quality might be.
|
|
Whithersoever Tom turned his happy young face, the people recognized
|
|
the exactness of his effigy's likeness to himself, the flesh-and-blood
|
|
counterpart; and new whirlwinds of applause burst forth.
|
|
The great pageant moved on, and still on, under one triumphal arch
|
|
after another, and past a bewildering succession of spectacular and
|
|
symbolical tableaux, each of which typified and exalted some virtue,
|
|
or talent, or merit, of the little king's. 'Throughout the whole of
|
|
Cheapside, from every penthouse and window, hung banners and
|
|
streamers; and the richest carpets, stuffs, and cloth-of-gold
|
|
tapestried the streets- specimens of the great wealth of the stores
|
|
within; and the splendor of this thoroughfare was equaled in the other
|
|
streets, and in some even surpassed.'
|
|
'And all these wonders and these marvels are to welcome me- me!'
|
|
murmured Tom Canty.
|
|
The mock king's cheeks were flushed with excitement, his eyes were
|
|
flashing, his senses swam in a delirium of pleasure. At this point,
|
|
just as he was raising his hand to fling another rich largess, he
|
|
caught sight of a pale, astounded face which was strained forward
|
|
out of the second rank of the crowd, its intense eyes riveted upon
|
|
him, A sickening consternation struck through him; he recognized his
|
|
mother! and up flew his hand, palm outward, before his eyes- that
|
|
old involuntary gesture, born of a forgotten episode, and
|
|
perpetuated by habit. In an instant more she had torn her way out of
|
|
the press, and past the guards, and was at his side. She embraced
|
|
his leg, she covered it with kisses, she cried, 'O, my child, my
|
|
darling!' lifting toward him a face that was transfigured with joy and
|
|
love. The same instant an officer of the King's Guard snatched her
|
|
away with a curse, and sent her reeling back whence she came with a
|
|
vigorous impulse from his strong arm. The words 'I do not know you,
|
|
woman!' were falling from Tom Canty's lips when this piteous thing
|
|
occurred; but it smote him to the heart to see her treated so; and
|
|
as she turned for a last glimpse of him, whilst the crowd was
|
|
swallowing her from his sight, she seemed so wounded, so
|
|
broken-hearted, that a shame fell upon him which consumed his pride to
|
|
ashes, and withered his stolen royalty. His grandeurs were stricken
|
|
valueless; they seemed to fall away from him like rotten rags.
|
|
The procession moved on, and still on, through ever-augmenting
|
|
splendors and ever-augmenting tempests of welcome; but to Tom Canty
|
|
they were as if they had not been. He neither saw nor heard. Royalty
|
|
had lost its grace and sweetness; its pomps were become a reproach.
|
|
Remorse was eating his heart out. He said, 'Would God I were free of
|
|
my captivity!'
|
|
He had unconsciously dropped back into the phraseology of the
|
|
first days of his compulsory greatness.
|
|
The shining pageant still went winding like a radiant and
|
|
interminable serpent down the crooked lanes of the quaint old city,
|
|
and through the huzzaing hosts; but still the king rode with bowed
|
|
head and vacant eyes, seeing only his mother's face and that wounded
|
|
look in it.
|
|
'Largess, largess!' The cry fell upon an unheeding ear.
|
|
'Long live Edward of England!' It seemed as if the earth shook
|
|
with the explosion; but there was no response from the king. He
|
|
heard it only as one hears the thunder of the surf when it is blown to
|
|
the ear out of a great distance, for it was smothered under another
|
|
sound which was still nearer, in his own breast, in his accusing
|
|
conscience- a voice which kept repeating those shameful words, 'I do
|
|
not know you, woman!'
|
|
The words smote upon the king's soul as the strokes of a funeral
|
|
bell smite upon the soul of a surviving friend when they remind him of
|
|
secret treacheries suffered at his hands by him that is gone.
|
|
New glories were unfolded at every turning; new wonders, new
|
|
marvels, sprung into view; the pent clamors of waiting batteries
|
|
were released; new raptures poured from the throats of the waiting
|
|
multitudes; but the king gave no sign, and the accusing voice that
|
|
went moaning through his comfortless breast was all the sound he
|
|
heard.
|
|
By and by the gladness in the faces of the populace changed a
|
|
little, and became touched with a something like solicitude or
|
|
anxiety; an abatement in the volume of applause was observable too.
|
|
The Lord Protector was quick to notice these things; he was as quick
|
|
to detect the cause. He spurred to the king's side, bent low in his
|
|
saddle, uncovered, and said:
|
|
'My liege, it is an ill time for dreaming. The people observe
|
|
thy downcast head, thy clouded mien, and they take it for an omen.
|
|
Be advised; unveil the sun of royalty, and let it shine upon these
|
|
boding vapors, and disperse them. Lift up thy face, and smile upon the
|
|
people.'
|
|
So saying, the duke scattered a handful of coins to right and
|
|
left, then retired to his place. The mock king did mechanically as
|
|
he had been bidden. His smile had no heart in it, but few eyes were
|
|
near enough or sharp enough to detect that. The noddings of his plumed
|
|
head as he saluted his subjects were full of grace and graciousness;
|
|
the largess which he delivered from his hand was royally liberal; so
|
|
the people's anxiety vanished, and the acclamations burst forth
|
|
again in as mighty a volume as before.
|
|
Still once more, a little before the progress was ended, the
|
|
duke was obliged to ride forward, and make remonstrance. He whispered:
|
|
'O dread sovereign! shake off these fatal humors; the eyes of
|
|
the world are upon thee.' Then he added with sharp annoyance,
|
|
'Perdition catch that crazy pauper! 'twas she that hath disturbed your
|
|
Highness.'
|
|
The gorgeous figure turned a lusterless eye upon the duke, and
|
|
said in a dead voice:
|
|
'She was my mother!'
|
|
'My God!' groaned the Protector as he reined his horse backward to
|
|
his post, 'the omen was pregnant with prophecy. He is gone mad again!'
|
|
CHAPTER XXXII
|
|
Coronation Day
|
|
|
|
LET us go backward a few hours, and place ourselves in Westminster
|
|
Abbey, at four o'clock in the morning of this memorable Coronation
|
|
Day. We are not without company; for although it is still night, we
|
|
find the torch-lighted galleries already filling up with people who
|
|
are well content to sit still and wait seven or eight hours till the
|
|
time shall come for them to see what they may not hope to see twice in
|
|
their lives- the coronation of a king. Yes, London and Westminster
|
|
have been astir ever since the warning guns boomed at three o'clock,
|
|
and already crowds of untitled rich folk who have bought the privilege
|
|
of trying to find sitting-room in the galleries are flocking in at the
|
|
entrances reserved for their sort.
|
|
The hours drag along, tediously enough. All stir has ceased for
|
|
some time, for every gallery has long ago been packed. We may sit now,
|
|
and look and think at our leisure. We have glimpses here and there and
|
|
yonder, through the dim cathedral twilight, of portions of many
|
|
galleries and balconies, wedged full with people, the other portions
|
|
of these galleries and balconies being cut off from sight by
|
|
intervening pillars and architectural projections. We have in view the
|
|
whole of the great north transept- empty, and waiting for England's
|
|
privileged ones. We see also the ample area or platform, carpeted with
|
|
rich stuffs, whereon the throne stands. The throne occupies the center
|
|
of the platform, and is raised above it upon an elevation of four
|
|
steps. Within the seat of the throne is inclosed a rough flat rock-
|
|
the Stone of Scone- which many generations of Scottish kings sat on to
|
|
be crowned, and so it in time became holy enough to answer a like
|
|
purpose for English monarchs. Both the throne and its footstool are
|
|
covered with cloth-of-gold.
|
|
Stillness reigns, the torches blink dully, the time drags heavily.
|
|
But at last the lagging daylight asserts itself, the torches are
|
|
extinguished, and a mellow radiance suffuses the great spaces. All
|
|
features of the noble building are distinct now, but soft and
|
|
dreamy, for the sun is lightly veiled with clouds.
|
|
At seven o'clock the first break in the drowsy monotony occurs;
|
|
for on the stroke of this hour the first peeress enters the
|
|
transept, clothed like Solomon for splendor, and is conducted to her
|
|
appointed place by an official clad in satins and velvets, whilst a
|
|
duplicate of him gathers up the lady's long train, follows after, and,
|
|
when the lady is seated, arranges the train across her lap for her. He
|
|
then places her footstool according to her desire, after which he puts
|
|
her coronet where it will be convenient to her hand when the time
|
|
for the simultaneous coroneting of the nobles shall arrive.
|
|
By this time the peeresses are flowing in in a glittering
|
|
stream, and satin-clad officials are flitting and glinting everywhere,
|
|
seating them and making them comfortable. The scene is animated enough
|
|
now. There is stir and life, and shifting color everywhere. After a
|
|
time, quiet reigns again; for the peeresses are all come, and are
|
|
all in their places- a solid acre, or such a matter, of human flowers,
|
|
resplendent in variegated colors, and frosted like a Milky Way with
|
|
diamonds. There are all ages here: brown, wrinkled, white-haired
|
|
dowagers who are able to go back, and still back, down the stream of
|
|
time, and recall the crowning of Richard III and the troublous days of
|
|
that old forgotten age; and there are handsome middle-aged dames;
|
|
and lovely and gracious young matrons; and gentle and beautiful
|
|
young girls, with beaming eyes and fresh complexions, who may possibly
|
|
put on their jeweled coronets awkwardly when the great time comes; for
|
|
the matter will be new to them, and their excitement will be a sore
|
|
hindrance. Still, this may not happen, for the hair of all these
|
|
ladies has been arranged with a special view to the swift and
|
|
successful lodging of the crown in its place when the signal comes.
|
|
We have seen that this massed array of peeresses is sown thick
|
|
with diamonds, and we also see that it is a marvelous spectacle- but
|
|
now we are about to be astonished in earnest. About nine, the clouds
|
|
suddenly break away and a shaft of sunshine cleaves the mellow
|
|
atmosphere, and drifts slowly along the ranks of ladies; and every
|
|
rank it touches flames into a dazzling splendor of many-colored fires,
|
|
and we tingle to our finger-tips with the electric thrill that is shot
|
|
through us by the surprise and the beauty of the spectacle!
|
|
Presently a special envoy from some distant corner of the Orient,
|
|
marching with the general body of foreign ambassadors, crosses this
|
|
bar of sunshine, and we catch our breath, the glory that streams and
|
|
flashes and palpitates about him is so overpowering; for he is crusted
|
|
from head to heels with gems, and his slightest movement showers a
|
|
dancing radiance all around him.
|
|
Let us change the tense for convenience. The time drifted along-
|
|
one hour- two hours- two hours and a half; then the deep booming of
|
|
artillery told that the king and his grand procession had arrived at
|
|
last; so the waiting multitude rejoiced. All knew that a further delay
|
|
must follow, for the king must be prepared and robed for the solemn
|
|
ceremony; but this delay would be pleasantly occupied by the
|
|
assembling of the peers of the realm in their stately robes. These
|
|
were conducted ceremoniously to their seats, and their coronets placed
|
|
conveniently at hand; and meanwhile the multitude in the galleries
|
|
were alive with interest, for most of them were beholding for the
|
|
first time, dukes, earls, and barons, whose names had been
|
|
historical for five hundred years. When all were finally seated, the
|
|
spectacle from the galleries and all coigns of vantage was complete; a
|
|
gorgeous one to look upon and to remember.
|
|
Now the robed and mitered great heads of the church, and their
|
|
attendants, filed in upon the platform and took their appointed
|
|
places; these were followed by the Lord Protector and other great
|
|
officials, and these again by a steel-clad detachment of the Guard.
|
|
There was a waiting pause; then, at a signal, a triumphant peal of
|
|
music burst forth, and Tom Canty, dothed in a long robe of
|
|
cloth-of-gold, appeared at a door, and stepped upon the platform.
|
|
The entire multitude rose, and the ceremony of the Recognition ensued.
|
|
Then a noble anthem swept the Abbey with its rich waves of
|
|
sound; and thus heralded and welcomed, Tom Canty was conducted to
|
|
the throne. The ancient ceremonies went on with impressive
|
|
solemnity, whilst the audience gazed; and as they drew nearer and
|
|
nearer to completion, Tom Canty grew pale, and still paler, and a deep
|
|
and steadily deepening woe and despondency settled down upon his
|
|
spirits and upon his remorseful heart.
|
|
At last the final act was at hand. The Archbishop of Canterbury
|
|
lifted up the crown of England from its cushion and held it out over
|
|
the trembling mock king's head. In the same instant a rainbow radiance
|
|
flashed along the spacious transept; for with one impulse every
|
|
individual in the great concourse of nobles lifted a coronet and
|
|
poised it over his or her head- and paused in that attitude.
|
|
A deep hush pervaded the Abbey. At this impressive moment, a
|
|
startling apparition intruded upon the scene- an apparition observed
|
|
by none in the absorbed multitude, until it suddenly appeared,
|
|
moving up the great central aisle. It was a boy, bareheaded, ill shod,
|
|
and clothed in coarse plebeian garments that were falling to rags.
|
|
He raised his hand with a solemnity which ill comported with his
|
|
soiled and sorry aspect, and delivered this note of warning:
|
|
'I forbid you to set the crown of England upon that forfeited
|
|
head. I am the king!'
|
|
In an instant several indignant hands were laid upon the boy;
|
|
but in the same instant Tom Canty, in his regal vestments, made a
|
|
swift step forward and cried out in a ringing voice:
|
|
'Loose him and forbear! He is the king!'
|
|
A sort of panic of astonishment swept the assemblage, and they
|
|
partly rose in their places and stared in a bewildered way at one
|
|
another and at the chief figures in this scene, like persons who
|
|
wondered whether they were awake and in their senses, or asleep and
|
|
dreaming. The Lord Protector was as amazed as the rest, but quickly
|
|
recovered himself and exclaimed in a voice of authority:
|
|
'Mind not his Majesty, his malady is upon him again- seize the
|
|
vagabond!'
|
|
He would have been obeyed, but the mock king stamped his foot
|
|
and cried out:
|
|
'On your peril! Touch him not, he is the king!'
|
|
The hands were withheld; a paralysis fell upon the house, no one
|
|
moved, no one spoke; indeed, no one knew how to act or what to say, in
|
|
so strange and surprising an emergency. While all minds were
|
|
struggling to right themselves, the boy still moved steadily
|
|
forward, with high port and confident mien; he had never halted from
|
|
the beginning; and while the tangled minds still floundered
|
|
helplessly, he stepped upon the platform, and the mock king ran with a
|
|
glad face to meet him; and fell on his knees before him and said:
|
|
'Oh, my lord the king, let poor Tom Canty be first to swear fealty
|
|
to thee, and say " Put on thy crown and enter into thine own again!"'
|
|
The Lord Protector's eye fell sternly upon the new-comer's face;
|
|
but straightway the sternness vanished away, and gave place to an
|
|
expression of wondering surprise. This thing happened also to the
|
|
other great officers. They glanced at each other, and retreated a step
|
|
by a common and unconscious impulse. The thought in each mind was
|
|
the same: 'What a strange resemblance!'
|
|
The Lord Protector reflected a moment or two in perplexity, then
|
|
he said, with grave respectfulness:
|
|
'By your favor, sir, I desire to ask certain questions which-'
|
|
'I will answer them, my lord.'
|
|
The duke asked him many questions about the court, the late
|
|
king, the prince, the princesses. The boy answered them correctly
|
|
and without hesitating. He described the rooms of state in the palace,
|
|
the late king's apartments, and those of the Prince of Wales.
|
|
It was strange; it was wonderful; yes, it was unaccountable- so
|
|
all said that heard it. The tide was beginning to turn, and Tom
|
|
Canty's hopes to run high, when the Lord Protector shook his head
|
|
and said:
|
|
'It is true it is most wonderful- but it is no more than our
|
|
lord the king likewise can do.' This remark, and this reference to
|
|
himself, as still the king, saddened Tom Canty, and he felt his
|
|
hopes crumbling from under him.
|
|
'These are not proofs,' added the Protector.
|
|
The tide was turning very fast now, very fast, indeed- but in
|
|
the wrong direction; it was leaving poor Tom Canty stranded on the
|
|
throne, and sweeping the other out to sea. The Lord Protector communed
|
|
with himself- shook his head- the thought forced itself upon him,
|
|
'It is perilous to the state and to us all, to entertain so fateful
|
|
a riddle as this; it could divide the nation and undermine the
|
|
throne.' He turned and said,
|
|
'Sir Thomas, arrest this- No, hold!' His face lighted, and he
|
|
confronted the ragged candidate with this question:
|
|
'Where lieth the Great Seal? Answer me this truly, and the
|
|
riddle is unriddled; for only he that was Prince of Wales can so
|
|
answer! On so trivial a thing hang a throne and a dynasty!'
|
|
It was a lucky thought, a happy thought. That it was so considered
|
|
by the great officials was manifested by the silent applause that shot
|
|
from eye to eye around their circle in the form of bright approving
|
|
glances. Yes, none but the true prince could dissolve the stubborn
|
|
mystery of the vanished Great Seal- this forlorn little impostor had
|
|
been taught his lesson well, but here his teachings must fail, for his
|
|
teacher himself could not answer that question- ah, very good, very
|
|
good indeed; now we shall be rid of this troublesome and perilous
|
|
business in short order! And so they nodded invisibly and smiled
|
|
inwardly with satisfaction, and looked to see this foolish lad
|
|
stricken with a palsy of guilty confusion. How surprised they were,
|
|
then, to see nothing of the sort happen- how they marveled to hear him
|
|
answer up promptly, in a confident and untroubled voice, and say:
|
|
'There is naught in this riddle that is difficult.' Then,
|
|
without so much as a by-your-leave to anybody, he turned and gave this
|
|
command, with the easy manner of one accustomed to doing such
|
|
things: 'My Lord St. John, go you to my private cabinet in the palace-
|
|
for none knoweth the place better than you- and, close down to the
|
|
floor, in the left corner remotest from the door that opens from the
|
|
antechamber, you shall find in the wall a brazen nail-head; press upon
|
|
it and a little jewel closet will fly open which not even you do
|
|
know of- no, nor any soul else in all the world but me and the
|
|
trusty artisan that did contrive it for me. The first thing that
|
|
falleth under your eye will be the Great Seal- fetch it hither.'
|
|
All the company wondered at this speech, and wondered still more
|
|
to see the little mendicant pick out this peer without hesitancy or
|
|
apparent fear of mistake, and call him by name with such a placidly
|
|
convincing air of having known him all his life. The peer was almost
|
|
surprised into obeying. He even made a movement as if to go, but
|
|
quickly recovered his tranquil attitude and confessed his blunder with
|
|
a blush. Tom Canty turned upon him and said, sharply:
|
|
'Why dost thou hesitate? Hast not heard the king's command? Go!'
|
|
The Lord St. John made a deep obeisance- and it was observed
|
|
that it was a significantly cautious and non-committal one, it not
|
|
being delivered at either of the kings, but at the neutral ground
|
|
about half-way between the two- and took his leave.
|
|
Now began a movement of the gorgeous particles of that official
|
|
group which was slow, scarcely perceptible, and yet steady and
|
|
persistent- a movement such as is observed in a kaleidoscope that is
|
|
turned slowly, whereby the components of one splendid cluster fall
|
|
away and join themselves to another- a movement which, little by
|
|
little, in the present case, dissolved the glittering crowd that stood
|
|
about Tom Canty and clustered it together again in the neighborhood of
|
|
the new-comer. Tom Canty stood almost alone. Now ensued a brief season
|
|
of deep suspense and waiting- during which even the few faint-hearts
|
|
still remaining near Tom Canty gradually scraped together courage
|
|
enough to glide, one by one, over to the majority. So at last Tom
|
|
Canty, in his royal robes and jewels, stood wholly alone and
|
|
isolated from the world, a conspicuous figure, occupying an eloquent
|
|
vacancy.
|
|
Now the Lord St. John was seen returning. As he advanced up the
|
|
mid-aisle the interest was so intense that the low murmur of
|
|
conversation in the great assemblage died out and was succeeded by a
|
|
profound hush, a breathless stillness, through which his footfalls
|
|
pulsed with a dull and distant sound. Every eye was fastened upon
|
|
him as he moved along. He reached the platform, paused a moment,
|
|
then moved toward Tom Canty with a deep obeisance, and said:
|
|
'Sire, the Seal is not there!'
|
|
A mob does not melt away from the presence of a plague-patient
|
|
with more haste than the band of pallid and terrified courtiers melted
|
|
away from the presence of the shabby little claimant of the Crown.
|
|
In a moment he stood all alone, without a friend or supporter, a
|
|
target upon which was concentrated a bitter fire of scornful and angry
|
|
looks. The Lord Protector called out fiercely:
|
|
'Cast the beggar into the street, and scourge him through the
|
|
town- the paltry knave is worth no more consideration!'
|
|
Officers of the guard sprang forward to obey, but Tom Canty
|
|
waved them off and said:
|
|
'Back! Whoso touches him perils his life!'
|
|
The Lord Protector was perplexed in the last degree. He said to
|
|
the Lord St. John:
|
|
'Searched you well?- but it boots not to ask that. It doth seem
|
|
passing strange. Little things, trifles, slip out of one's ken, and
|
|
one does not think it matter for surprise; but how a so bulky thing as
|
|
the Seal of England can vanish away and no man be able to get track of
|
|
it again- a massy golden disk-'
|
|
Tom Canty, with beaming eyes, sprang forward and shouted:
|
|
'Hold, that is enough! Was it round?- and thick?- and had it
|
|
letters and devices graved upon it?- Yes? Oh, now I know what this
|
|
Great Seal is that there's been such worry and pother about! An ye had
|
|
described it to me, ye could have had it three weeks ago. Right well I
|
|
know where it lies; but it was not I that put it there- first.'
|
|
'Who, then, my liege?' asked the Lord Protector.
|
|
'He that stands there- the rightful king of England. And he
|
|
shall tell you himself where it lies- then you will believe he knew it
|
|
of his own knowledge. Bethink thee, my king- spur thy memory- it was
|
|
the last, the very last thing thou didst that day before thou didst
|
|
rush forth from the palace, clothed in my rags, to punish the
|
|
soldier that insulted me.'
|
|
A silence ensued, undisturbed by a movement or a whisper, and
|
|
all eyes were fixed upon the new-comer, who stood, with bent head
|
|
and corrugated brow, groping in his memory among a thronging multitude
|
|
of valueless recollections for one single little elusive fact, which
|
|
found, would seat him upon a throne- unfound, would leave him as he
|
|
was, for good and all- a pauper and an outcast. Moment after moment
|
|
passed- the moments built themselves into minutes- still the boy
|
|
struggled silently on, and gave no sign. But at last he heaved a sigh,
|
|
shook his head slowly, and said, with a trembling lip and in a
|
|
despondent voice:
|
|
'I call the scene back- all of it- but the Seal hath no place in
|
|
it.' He paused, then looked up, and said with gentle dignity, 'My
|
|
lords and gentlemen, if ye will rob your rightful sovereign of his own
|
|
for lack of this evidence which he is not able to furnish, I may not
|
|
stay ye, being powerless. But-'
|
|
'O folly, O madness, my king!' cried Tom Canty, in a panic,
|
|
'wait!- think! Do not give up!- the cause is not lost! Nor shall be,
|
|
neither! List to what I say- follow every word- I am going to bring
|
|
that morning back again, every hap just as it happened. We talked- I
|
|
told you of my sisters, Nan and Bet- ah, yes, you remember that; and
|
|
about mine old grandam- and the rough games of the lads of Offal
|
|
Court- yes, you remember these things also; very well, follow me
|
|
still, you shall recall everything. You gave me food and drink, and
|
|
did with princely courtesy send away the servants, so that my low
|
|
breeding might not shame me before them- ah, yes, this also you
|
|
remember.'
|
|
As Tom checked off his details, and the other boy nodded his
|
|
head in recognition of them, the great audience and the officials
|
|
stared in puzzled wonderment; the tale sounded like true history,
|
|
yet how could this impossible conjunction between a prince and a
|
|
beggar boy have come about? Never was a company of people so
|
|
perplexed, so interested, and so stupefied, before.
|
|
'For a jest, my prince, we did exchange garments. Then we stood
|
|
before a mirror; and so alike were we that both said it seemed as if
|
|
there had been no change made- yes, you remember that. Then you
|
|
noticed that the soldier had hurt my hand- look! here it is, I
|
|
cannot yet even write with it, the fingers are so stiff. At this
|
|
your Highness sprang up, vowing vengeance upon that soldier, and ran
|
|
toward the door- you passed a table- that thing you call the Seal
|
|
lay on that table- you snatched it up and looked eagerly about, as
|
|
if for a place to hide it- your eye caught sight of-'
|
|
'There, 'tis sufficient!- and the dear God be thanked!'
|
|
exclaimed the ragged claimant, in a mighty excitement. 'Go, my good
|
|
St. John- in an arm-piece of the Milanese armor that hangs on the
|
|
wall, thou'lt find the Seal!'
|
|
'Right, my king! right!' cried Tom Canty; 'now the scepter of
|
|
England is thine own; and it were better for him that would dispute it
|
|
that he had been born dumb! Go, my Lord St. John, give thy feet
|
|
wings!'
|
|
The whole assemblage was on its feet now, and well-nigh out of its
|
|
mind with uneasiness, apprehension, and consuming excitement. On the
|
|
floor and on the platform a deafening buzz of frantic conversation
|
|
burst forth, and for some time nobody knew anything or heard
|
|
anything or was interested in anything but what his neighbor was
|
|
shouting into his ear, or he was shouting into his neighbor's ear.
|
|
Time- nobody knew how much of it- swept by unheeded and unnoted. At
|
|
last a sudden hush fell upon the house, and in the same moment St.
|
|
John appeared upon the platform and held the Great Seal aloft in his
|
|
hand. Then such a shout went up!
|
|
'Long live the true king!'
|
|
For five minutes the air quaked with shouts and the crash of
|
|
musical instruments, and was white with a storm of waving
|
|
handkerchiefs; and through it all a ragged lad, the most conspicuous
|
|
figure in England, stood, flushed and happy and proud, in the center
|
|
of the spacious platform, with the great vassals of the kingdom
|
|
kneeling around him.
|
|
Then all rose, and Tom Canty cried out:
|
|
'Now, O my king, take these regal garments back, and give poor
|
|
Tom, thy servant, his shreds and remnants again.'
|
|
The Lord Protector spoke up:
|
|
'Let the small varlet be stripped and flung into the Tower.'
|
|
But the new king, the true king, said:
|
|
'I will not have it so. But for him I had not got my crown
|
|
again- none shall lay a hand upon him to harm him. And as for thee, my
|
|
good uncle, my Lord Protector, this conduct of thine is not grateful
|
|
toward this poor lad, for I hear he hath made thee a duke'- the
|
|
Protector blushed-' yet he was not a king; wherefore, what is thy fine
|
|
title worth now? To-morrow you shall sue to me, through him, for its
|
|
confirmation, else no duke, but a simple earl, shalt thou remain.'
|
|
Under this rebuke, his grace the Duke of Somerset retired a
|
|
little from the front for the moment. The king turned to Tom, and
|
|
said, kindly:
|
|
'My poor boy, how was it that you could remember where I hid the
|
|
Seal when I could not remember it myself?'
|
|
'Ah, my king, that was easy, since I used it divers days.'
|
|
'Used it- yet could not explain where it was?'
|
|
'I did not know it was that they wanted. They did not describe it,
|
|
your majesty.'
|
|
'Then how used you it?'
|
|
The red blood began to steal up into Tom's cheeks, and he
|
|
dropped his eyes and was silent.
|
|
'Speak up, good lad, and fear nothing,' said the king. 'How used
|
|
you the Great Seal of England?'
|
|
Tom stammered a moment, in a pathetic confusion, then got it out:
|
|
'To crack nuts with!'
|
|
Poor child, the avalanche of laughter that greeted this, nearly
|
|
swept him off his feet. But if a doubt remained in any mind that Tom
|
|
Canty was not the king of England and familiar with the august
|
|
appurtenances of royalty, this reply disposed of it utterly.
|
|
Meantime the sumptuous robe of state had been removed from Tom's
|
|
shoulders to the king's, whose rags were effectively hidden from sight
|
|
under it. Then the coronation ceremonies were resumed; the true king
|
|
was anointed and the crown set upon his head, whilst cannon
|
|
thundered the news to the city, and all London seemed to rock with
|
|
applause.
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIII
|
|
Edward as King
|
|
|
|
MILES HENDON was picturesque enough before he got into the riot on
|
|
London Bridge- he was more so when he got out of it. He had but little
|
|
money when he got in, none at all when he got out. The pickpockets had
|
|
stripped him of his last farthing.
|
|
But no matter, so he found his boy. Being a soldier, he did not go
|
|
at his task in a random way, but set to work, first of all, to arrange
|
|
his campaign.
|
|
What would the boy naturally do? Where would he naturally go?
|
|
Well- argued Miles- he would naturally go to his former haunts, for
|
|
that is the instinct of unsound minds, when homeless and forsaken,
|
|
as well as of sound ones. Whereabouts were his former haunts? His
|
|
rags, taken together with the low villain who seemed to know him and
|
|
who even claimed to be his father, indicated that his home was in
|
|
one or other of the poorest and meanest districts of London. Would the
|
|
search for him be difficult, or long? No, it was likely to be easy and
|
|
brief. He would not hunt for the boy, he would hunt for a crowd; in
|
|
the center of a big crowd or a little one, sooner or later he should
|
|
find his poor little friend, sure; and the mangy mob would be
|
|
entertaining itself with pestering and aggravating the boy, who
|
|
would be proclaiming himself king, as usual. Then Miles Hendon would
|
|
cripple some of those people, and carry off his little ward, and
|
|
comfort and cheer him with loving words, and the two would never be
|
|
separated any more.
|
|
So Miles started on his quest. Hour after hour he tramped
|
|
through back alleys and squalid streets, seeking groups and crowds,
|
|
and finding no end of them, but never any sign of the boy. This
|
|
greatly surprised him, but did not discourage him. To his notion,
|
|
there was nothing the matter with his plan of campaign; the only
|
|
miscalculation about it was that the campaign was becoming a lengthy
|
|
one, whereas he had expected it to be short.
|
|
When daylight arrived at last, he had made many a mile, and
|
|
canvassed many a crowd, but the only result was that he was
|
|
tolerably tired, rather hungry, and very sleepy. He wanted some
|
|
breakfast, but there was no way to get it. To beg for it did not occur
|
|
to him; as to pawning his sword, he would as soon have thought of
|
|
parting with his honor; he could spare some of his clothes- yes, but
|
|
one could as easily find a customer for a disease as for such clothes.
|
|
At noon he was still tramping- among the rabble which followed
|
|
after the royal procession now; for he argued that this regal
|
|
display would attract his little lunatic powerfully. He followed the
|
|
pageant through all its devious windings about London, and all the way
|
|
to Westminster and the Abbey. He drifted here and there among the
|
|
multitudes that were massed in the vicinity for a weary long time,
|
|
baffled and perplexed, and finally wandered off thinking, and trying
|
|
to contrive some way to better his plan of campaign. By and by, when
|
|
he came to himself out of his musings, he discovered that the town was
|
|
far behind him and that the day was growing old. He was near the
|
|
river, and in the country; it was a region of fine rural seats- not
|
|
the sort of district to welcome clothes like his.
|
|
It was not at all cold; so he stretched himself on the ground in
|
|
the lee of a hedge to rest and think. Drowsiness presently began to
|
|
settle upon his senses; the faint and far-off boom of cannon was
|
|
wafted to his ear, and he said to himself, 'The new king is
|
|
crowned,' and straightway fell asleep. He had not slept or rested,
|
|
before, for more than thirty hours. He did not wake again until near
|
|
the middle of the next morning.
|
|
He got up, lame, stiff, and half famished, washed himself in the
|
|
river, stayed his stomach with a pint or two of water, and trudged off
|
|
toward Westminster grumbling at himself for having wasted so much
|
|
time. Hunger helped him to a new plan now; he would try to get
|
|
speech with old Sir Humphrey Marlow and borrow a few marks, and- but
|
|
that was enough of a plan for the present; it would be time enough
|
|
to enlarge it when this first stage should be accomplished.
|
|
Toward eleven o'clock he approached the palace; and although a
|
|
host of showy people were about him, moving in the same direction,
|
|
he was not inconspicuous- his costume took care of that. He watched
|
|
these people's faces narrowly, hoping to find a charitable one whose
|
|
possessor might be willing to carry his name to the old lieutenant- as
|
|
to trying to get into the palace himself, that was simply out of the
|
|
question.
|
|
Presently our whipping-boy passed him, then wheeled about and
|
|
scanned his figure well, saying to himself, 'An that is not the very
|
|
vagabond his majesty is in such a worry about, then am I an ass-
|
|
though belike I was that before. He answereth the description to a
|
|
rag- that God should make two such, would be to cheapen miracles, by
|
|
wasteful repetition. I would I could contrive an excuse to speak
|
|
with him.'
|
|
Miles Hendon saved him the trouble; for he turned about, then,
|
|
as a man generally will when somebody mesmerizes him by gazing hard at
|
|
him from behind; and observing a strong interest in the boy's eyes, he
|
|
stepped toward him and said:
|
|
'You have just come out from the palace; do you belong there?'
|
|
'Yes, your worship.'
|
|
'Know you Sir Humphrey Marlow?'
|
|
The boy started, and said to himself, 'Lord! mine old departed
|
|
father!' Then he answered, aloud, 'Right well, your worship.'
|
|
'Good- is he within?'
|
|
'Yes,' said the boy; and added, to himself, 'within his grave.'
|
|
Might I crave your favor to carry my name to him, and say I beg to
|
|
say a word in his ear?'
|
|
'I will despatch the business right willingly, fair sir.'
|
|
'Then say Miles Hendon, son of Sir Richard, is here without- I
|
|
shall be greatly bounden to you, my good lad.'
|
|
The boy looked disappointed- 'the king did not name him so,' he
|
|
said to himself- 'but it mattereth not, this is his twin brother,
|
|
and can give his majesty news of t'other Sir-Odds-and-Ends, I
|
|
warrant.' So he said to Miles, 'Step in there a moment, good sir,
|
|
and wait till I bring you word.'
|
|
Hendon retired to the place indicated- it was a recess sunk in the
|
|
palace wall, with a stone bench in it- a shelter for sentinels in
|
|
bad weather. He had hardly seated himself when some halberdiers, in
|
|
charge of an officer, passed by. The officer saw him, halted his
|
|
men, and commanded Hendon to come forth. He obeyed, and was promptly
|
|
arrested as a suspicious character prowling within the precincts of
|
|
the palace. Things began to look ugly. Poor Miles was going to
|
|
explain, but the officer roughly silenced him, and ordered his men
|
|
to disarm him and search him.
|
|
'God of his mercy grant that they find somewhat,' said poor Miles;
|
|
'I have searched enow, and failed, yet is my need greater than
|
|
theirs.'
|
|
Nothing was found but a document. The officer tore it open, and
|
|
Hendon smiled when he recognized the 'pot-hooks' made by his lost
|
|
little friend that black day at Hendon Hall. The officer's face grew
|
|
dark as he read the English paragraph, and Miles blenched to the
|
|
opposite color as he listened.
|
|
'Another new claimant of the crown!' cried the officer. 'Verily
|
|
they breed like rabbits to-day. Seize the rascal, men, and see ye keep
|
|
him fast while I convey this precious paper within and send it to
|
|
the king.
|
|
He hurried away, leaving the prisoner in the grip of the
|
|
halberdiers.
|
|
'Now is my evil luck ended at last,' muttered Hendon, 'for I shall
|
|
dangle at a rope's end for a certainty, by reason of that bit of
|
|
writing. And what will become of my poor lad!- ah, only the good God
|
|
knoweth.'
|
|
By and by he saw the officer coming again, in a great hurry; so he
|
|
plucked his courage together, purposing to meet his trouble as
|
|
became a man. The officer ordered the men to loose the prisoner and
|
|
return his sword to him; then bowed respectfully, and said:
|
|
'Please you, sir, to follow me.'
|
|
Hendon followed, saying to himself, 'An I were not travelling to
|
|
death and judgment, and so must needs economize in sin, I would
|
|
throttle this knave for his mock courtesy.'
|
|
The two traversed a populous court, and arrived at the grand
|
|
entrance of the palace, where the officer, with another bow, delivered
|
|
Hendon into the hands of a gorgeous official, who received him with
|
|
profound respect and led him forward through a great hall, lined on
|
|
both sides with rows of splendid flunkies (who made reverential
|
|
obeisance as the two passed along, but fell into death-throes of
|
|
silent laughter at our stately scarecrow the moment his back was
|
|
turned), and up a broad staircase, among flocks of fine folk, and
|
|
finally conducted him to a vast room, clove a passage for him
|
|
through the assembled nobility of England, then made a bow, reminded
|
|
him to take his hat off, and left him standing in the middle of the
|
|
room, a mark for all eyes, for plenty of indignant frowns, and for a
|
|
sufficiency of amused and derisive smiles.
|
|
Miles Hendon was entirely bewildered. There sat the young king,
|
|
under a canopy of state, five steps away, with his head bent down
|
|
and aside, speaking with a sort of human bird of paradise- a duke,
|
|
maybe; Hendon observed to himself that it was hard enough to be
|
|
sentenced to death in the full vigor of life, without having this
|
|
peculiarly public humiliation added. He wished the king would hurry
|
|
about it- some of the gaudy people near by were becoming pretty
|
|
offensive. At this moment the king raised his head slightly and Hendon
|
|
caught a good view of his face. The sight nearly took his breath away!
|
|
He stood gazing at the fair young face like one transfixed; then
|
|
presently ejaculated:
|
|
'Lo, the lord of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows on his throne!'
|
|
He muttered some broken sentences, still gazing and marveling;
|
|
then turned his eyes around and about, scanning the gorgeous throng
|
|
and the splendid saloon, murmuring, 'But these are real- verily
|
|
these are real- surely it is not a dream.'
|
|
He stared at the king again- and thought, 'Is it a dream?... or is
|
|
he the veritable sovereign of England, and not the friendless poor Tom
|
|
o' Bedlam I took him for- who shall solve me this riddle?'
|
|
A sudden idea flashed in his eye, and he strode to the wall,
|
|
gathered up a chair, brought it back, planted it on the floor, and sat
|
|
down in it!
|
|
A buzz of indignation broke out, a rough hand was laid upon him,
|
|
and a voice exclaimed:
|
|
'Up, thou mannerless clown!- wouldst sit in the presence of the
|
|
king?'
|
|
The disturbance attracted his majesty's attention, who stretched
|
|
forth his hand and cried out:
|
|
'Touch him not, it is his right!'
|
|
The throng fell back, stupefied. The king went on:
|
|
'Learn ye all, ladies, lords and gentlemen, that this is my trusty
|
|
and well-beloved servant, Miles Hendon, who interposed his good
|
|
sword and saved his prince from bodily harm and possible death- and
|
|
for this he is a knight, by the king's voice. Also learn, that for a
|
|
higher service, in that he saved his sovereign stripes and shame,
|
|
taking these upon himself, he is a peer of England, Earl of Kent,
|
|
and shall have gold and lands meet for the dignity. More- the
|
|
privilege which he hath just exercised is his by royal grant; for we
|
|
have ordained that the chiefs of his line shall have and hold the
|
|
right to sit in the presence of the majesty of England henceforth, age
|
|
after age, so long as the crown shall endure. Molest him not.'
|
|
Two persons, who, through delay, had only arrived from the country
|
|
during this morning, and had now been in this room only five
|
|
minutes, stood listening to these words and looking at the king,
|
|
then at the scarecrow, then at the king again, in a sort of torpid
|
|
bewilderment. These were Sir Hugh and the Lady Edith. But the new earl
|
|
did not see them. He was still staring at the monarch, in a dazed way,
|
|
and muttering:
|
|
'Oh, body o' me! This my pauper! This my lunatic! This is he
|
|
whom I would show what grandeur was, in my house of seventy rooms
|
|
and seven and twenty servants! This is he who had never known aught
|
|
but rags for raiment, kicks for comfort, and offal for diet! This is
|
|
he whom I adopted and would make respectable! Would God I had a bag to
|
|
hide my head in!'
|
|
Then his manners suddenly came back to him, and he dropped upon
|
|
his knees, with his hands between the king's, and swore allegiance and
|
|
did homage for his lands and titles. Then he rose and stood
|
|
respectfully aside, a mark still for all eyes- and much envy, too.
|
|
Now the king discovered Sir Hugh, and spoke out, with wrathful
|
|
voice and kindling eye:
|
|
'Strip this robber of his false show and stolen estates, and put
|
|
him under lock and key till I have need of him.'
|
|
The late Sir Hugh was led away.
|
|
There was a stir at the other end of the room now; the
|
|
assemblage fell apart, and Tom Canty, quaintly but richly clothed,
|
|
marched down, between these living walls, preceded by an usher. He
|
|
knelt before the king, who said:
|
|
'I have learned the story of these past few weeks, and am well
|
|
pleased with thee. Thou hast governed the realm with right royal
|
|
gentleness and mercy. Thou hast found thy mother and thy sisters
|
|
again? Good; they shall be cared for- and thy father shall hang, if
|
|
thou desire it and the law consent. Know, all ye that hear my voice,
|
|
that from this day, they that abide in the shelter of Christ's
|
|
Hospital and share the king's bounty, shall have their minds and
|
|
hearts fed, as well as their baser parts; and this boy shall dwell
|
|
there, and hold the chief place in its honorable body of governors,
|
|
during life. And for that he hath been a king, it is meet that other
|
|
than common observance shall be his due; wherefore, note this his
|
|
dress of state, for by it he shall be known, and none shall copy it;
|
|
and wheresoever he shall come, it shall remind the people that he hath
|
|
been royal, in his time, and none shall deny him his due of
|
|
reverence or fail to give him salutation. He hath the throne's
|
|
protection, he hath the crown's support, he shall be known and
|
|
called by the honorable title of the King's Ward.'
|
|
The proud and happy Tom Canty rose and kissed the king's hand, and
|
|
was conducted from the presence. He did not waste any time, but flew
|
|
to his mother, to tell her and Nan and Bet all about it and get them
|
|
to help him enjoy the great news.*(22)
|
|
CONCLUSION
|
|
CONCLUSION
|
|
Justice and Retribution
|
|
|
|
WHEN the mysteries were all cleared up, it came out, by confession
|
|
of Hugh Hendon, that his wife had repudiated Miles by his command that
|
|
day at Hendon Hall- a command assisted and supported by the
|
|
perfectly trustworthy promise that if she did not deny that he was
|
|
Miles Hendon, and stand firmly to it, he would have her life;
|
|
whereupon she said take it, she did not value it- and she would not
|
|
repudiate Miles; then her husband said he would spare her life, but
|
|
have Miles assassinated! This was a different matter; so she gave
|
|
her word and kept it.
|
|
Hugh was not prosecuted for his threats or for stealing his
|
|
brother's estates and title, because the wife and brother would not
|
|
testify against him- and the former would not have been allowed to
|
|
do it, even if she had wanted to. Hugh deserted his wife and went over
|
|
to the continent, where he presently died; and by and by the Earl of
|
|
Kent married his relict. There were grand times and rejoicings at
|
|
Hendon village when the couple paid their first visit to the Hall.
|
|
Tom Canty's father was never heard of again.
|
|
The king sought out the farmer who had been branded and sold as
|
|
a slave, and reclaimed him from his evil life with the Ruffler's gang,
|
|
and put him in the way of a comfortable livelihood.
|
|
He also took that old lawyer out of prison and remitted his
|
|
fine. He provided good homes for the daughters of the two Baptist
|
|
women whom he saw burned at the stake, and roundly punished the
|
|
official who laid the undeserved stripes upon Miles Hendon's back.
|
|
He saved from the gallows the boy who had captured the stray
|
|
falcon, and also the woman who had stolen the remnant of cloth from
|
|
a weaver; but he was too late to save the man who had been convicted
|
|
of killing a deer in the royal forest.
|
|
He showed favor to the justice who had pitied him when he was
|
|
supposed to have stolen a pig, and he had the gratification of
|
|
seeing him grow in the public esteem and become a great and honored
|
|
man.
|
|
As long as the king lived he was fond of telling the story of
|
|
his adventures, all through, from the hour that the sentinel cuffed
|
|
him away from the palace gate till the final midnight when he deftly
|
|
mixed himself into a gang of hurrying workmen and so slipped into
|
|
the Abbey and climbed up and hid himself in the Confessor's tomb,
|
|
and then slept so long, next day, that he came within one of missing
|
|
the Coronation altogether. He said that the frequent rehearsing of the
|
|
precious lesson kept him strong in his purpose to make its teachings
|
|
yield benefits to his people; and so, while his life was spared he
|
|
should continue to tell the story, and thus keep its sorrowful
|
|
spectacles fresh in his memory and the springs of pity replenished
|
|
in his heart.
|
|
Miles Hendon and Tom Canty were favorites of the king, all through
|
|
his brief reign, and his sincere mourners when he died. The good
|
|
Earl of Kent had too much good sense to abuse his peculiar
|
|
privilege; but he exercised it twice after the instance we have seen
|
|
of it before he was called from the world; once at the accession of
|
|
Queen Mary, and once at the accession of Queen Elizabeth. A descendant
|
|
of his exercised it at the accession of James I. Before this one's son
|
|
chose to use the privilege, near a quarter of a century had elapsed,
|
|
and the 'privilege of the Kents' had faded out of most people's
|
|
memories; so, when the Kent of that day appeared before Charles I
|
|
and his court and sat down in the sovereign's presence to assert and
|
|
perpetuate the right of his house, there was a fine stir, indeed!
|
|
But the matter was soon explained and the right confirmed. The last
|
|
earl of the line fell in the wars of the Commonwealth fighting for the
|
|
king, and the odd privilege ended with him.
|
|
Tom Canty lived to be a very old man, a handsome, white-haired old
|
|
fellow, of grave and benignant aspect. As long as he lasted he was
|
|
honored; and he was also reverenced, for his striking and peculiar
|
|
costume kept the people reminded that 'in his time he had been royal';
|
|
so, wherever he appeared the crowd fell apart, making way for him, and
|
|
whispering, one to another, 'Doff thy hat, it is the King's Ward!'-
|
|
and so they saluted, and got his kindly smile in return- and they
|
|
valued it, too, for his was an honorable history.
|
|
Yes, King Edward VI lived only a few years, poor boy, but he lived
|
|
them worthily. More than once, when some great dignitary, some
|
|
gilded vassal of the crown, made argument against his leniency, and
|
|
urged that some law which he was bent upon amending was gentle
|
|
enough for its purpose, and wrought no suffering or oppression which
|
|
any one need mightily mind, the young king turned the mournful
|
|
eloquence of his great compassionate eyes upon him and answered:
|
|
'What dost thou know of suffering and oppression! I and my
|
|
people know, but not thou.'
|
|
The reign of Edward VI was a singularly merciful one for those
|
|
harsh times. Now that we are taking leave of him let us try to keep
|
|
this in our minds, to his credit.
|
|
NOTES
|
|
NOTES
|
|
|
|
* Christ's Hospital Costume. It is most reasonable to regard the
|
|
dress as copied from the costume of the citizens of London of that
|
|
period, when long blue coats were the common habit of apprentices
|
|
and serving-men, and yellow stockings were generally worn; the coat
|
|
fits closely to the body, but has loose sleeves, and beneath is worn a
|
|
sleeveless yellow undercoat; around the waist is a red leathern
|
|
girdle; a clerical band around the neck, and a small flat black cap,
|
|
about the size of a saucer, completes the costume.- Timbs's
|
|
'Curiosities of London.'
|
|
|
|
*(2) It appears that Christ's Hospital was not originally
|
|
founded as a school; its object was to rescue children from the
|
|
streets, to shelter, feed, clothe them, etc.- Timb's 'Curiosities of
|
|
London.'
|
|
|
|
*(3) The Duke of Norfolk's Condemnation Commanded. The King was
|
|
now approaching fast toward his end; and fearing lest Norfolk should
|
|
escape him, he sent a message to the Commons, by which he desired them
|
|
to hasten the bill, on pretense that Norfolk enjoyed the dignity of
|
|
earl marshal, and it was necessary to appoint another, who might
|
|
officiate at the ensuing ceremony of installing his son Prince of
|
|
Wales.- Hume, vol. iii, p. 307
|
|
|
|
*(4) It was not till the end of this reign (Henry VIII) that any
|
|
salads, carrots, turnips, or other edible roots were produced in
|
|
England. The little of these vegetables that was used was formerly
|
|
imported from Holland and Flanders. Queen Catherine, when she wanted a
|
|
salad, was obliged to despatch a messenger thither on purpose.- Hume's
|
|
History of England, vol. iii, p. 314.
|
|
|
|
*(5) Attainder of Norfolk. The house of peers, without examining
|
|
the prisoner, without trial or evidence, passed a bill of attainder
|
|
against him and sent it down to the commons.... The obsequious commons
|
|
obeyed his (the King's) directions; and the King, having affixed the
|
|
royal assent to the bill by commissioners, issued orders for the
|
|
execution of Norfolk on the morning of the twenty-ninth of January
|
|
(the next day).- Hume's England, vol. iii, p. 306.
|
|
|
|
*(6) The Loving-Cup. The loving-cup, and the peculiar ceremonies
|
|
observed in drinking from it, are older than English history. It is
|
|
thought that both are Danish importations. As far back as knowledge
|
|
goes, the loving-cup has always been drunk at English banquets.
|
|
Tradition explains the ceremonies in this way: in the rude ancient
|
|
times it was deemed a wise precaution to have both hands of both
|
|
drinkers employed, lest while the pledger pledged his love and
|
|
fidelity to the pledgee the pledgee take that opportunity to slip a
|
|
dirk into him!
|
|
|
|
*(7) The Duke of Norfolks Narrow Escape. Had Henry VIII survived a
|
|
few hours longer, his order for the duke's execution would have been
|
|
carried into effect. 'But news being carried to the Tower that the
|
|
King himself had expired that night, the lieutenant deferred obeying
|
|
the warrant; and it was not thought advisable by the council to
|
|
begin a new reign by the death of the greatest nobleman in the
|
|
Kingdom, who had been condemned by a sentence so unjust and
|
|
tyrannical.'- Hume's England, vol. iii, p 307.
|
|
|
|
*(8) He refers to the order of baronets, or baronettes- the
|
|
barones minor, as distinct from the parliamentary barons;- not, it
|
|
need hardly be said, the baronets of later creation.
|
|
|
|
*(9) The lords of Kingsale, descendants of De Courcy, still
|
|
enjoy this curious privilege.
|
|
|
|
*(10) Hume.
|
|
|
|
*(11) Hume.
|
|
|
|
*(12) The Whipping-Boy. James I and Charles II had whipping-boys
|
|
when they were little fellows, to take their punishment for them
|
|
when they fell short in their lessons; so I have ventured to furnish
|
|
my small prince with one, for my own purposes.
|
|
|
|
*(13) Character of Hertford. The young king discovered an
|
|
extreme attachment to his uncle, who was, in the main, a man of
|
|
moderation and probity.- Hume's England, vol. iii, p. 324.
|
|
But if he (the Protector) gave offense by assuming too much state,
|
|
he deserves great praise on account of the laws passed this session,
|
|
by which the rigor of former statutes was much mitigated, and some
|
|
security given to the freedom of the constitution. All laws were
|
|
repealed which extended the crime of treason beyond the statute of the
|
|
twenty-fifth of Edward III; all laws enacted during the late reign
|
|
extending the crime of felony; all the former laws against Lollardy or
|
|
heresy, together with the statute of the Six Articles. None were to be
|
|
accused for words, but within a month after they were spoken. By these
|
|
repeals several of the most rigorous laws that ever had passed in
|
|
England were annulled; and some dawn, both of civil and religious
|
|
liberty, began to appear to the people. A repeal also passed of that
|
|
law, the destruction of all laws, by which the king's proclamation was
|
|
made of equal force with a statute.- Ibid., vol. iii, p. 339.
|
|
Boiling to Death. In the reign of Henry VIII, poisoners were, by
|
|
act of parliament condemned to be boiled to death. This act was
|
|
repealed in the following reign.
|
|
In Germany, even in the 17th century, this horrible punishment was
|
|
inflicted on coiners and counterfeiters. Taylor, the Water Poet,
|
|
describes an execution he witnessed in Hamburg, in 1616. The judgement
|
|
pronounced against a coiner of false money was that he should 'be
|
|
boiled to death in oil: not thrown into the vessel at once, but with a
|
|
pulley or rope to be hanged under the armpits, and then let down
|
|
into the oil by degrees; first the feet, and next the legs, and so
|
|
to boil his flesh from his bones alive.'- Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's
|
|
'Blue Laws, True and False,' p. 13.
|
|
The Famous Stocking Case. A woman and her daughter, nine years
|
|
old, were hanged in Huntingdon for selling their souls to the devil,
|
|
and raising a storm by pulling off their stockings!- Ibid., p. 20.
|
|
|
|
*(14) Leigh Hunt's The Town, p. 408, quotation from an early
|
|
tourist.
|
|
|
|
*(15) From 'The English Rogue': London, 1665.
|
|
|
|
*(16) Canting terms for various kinds of thieves, beggars and
|
|
vagabonds, and their female companions.
|
|
|
|
*(17) Enslaving. So young a king, and so ignorant a peasant were
|
|
likely to make mistakes- and this is an instance in point. This
|
|
peasant was suffering from this law by anticipation; the king was
|
|
venting his indignation against a law which was not yet in
|
|
existence: for this hideous statute was to have birth in this little
|
|
king's own reign. However, we know, from the humanity of his
|
|
character, that it could never have been suggested by him.
|
|
|
|
*(18) From 'The English Rogue': London, 1665.
|
|
|
|
*(19) Death for Trifling Larcenies. When Connecticut and New Haven
|
|
were framing their first codes, larceny above the value of twelve
|
|
pence was a capital crime in England, as it had been since the time of
|
|
Henry I.- Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's 'Blue Laws, True and False.' p.
|
|
17.
|
|
The curious old book called The English Rogue makes the limit
|
|
thirteen pence ha'penny; death being the portion of any who steal a
|
|
thing 'above the value of thirteen pence ha'penny.'
|
|
|
|
*(20) From many descriptions of larceny, the law expressly took
|
|
away the benefit of clergy; to steal a horse, or a hawk, or woolen
|
|
cloth from the weaver, was a hanging matter. So it was to kill a
|
|
deer from the king's forest, or to export sheep from the Kingdom.- Dr.
|
|
J. Hammond Trumbull's 'Blue Laws, True and False,' p. 13.
|
|
William Prynne, a learned barrister, was sentenced- (long after
|
|
Edward the Sixth's time)- to lose both his ears in the pillory; to
|
|
degradation from the bar; a fine of L3,000, and imprisonment for life.
|
|
Three years afterward, he gave new offense to Laud, by publishing a
|
|
pamphlet against the hierarchy. He was again prosecuted, and was
|
|
sentenced to lose what remained of his ears; to pay a fine of
|
|
L5,000; to be branded on both his cheeks with the letters S. L. (for
|
|
Seditious Libeler), and to remain in prison for life. The severity
|
|
of this sentence was equaled by the savage rigor of its execution.-
|
|
Ibid., p. 12.
|
|
|
|
*(21) Hume's England.
|
|
|
|
*(22) Christ's Hospital or Blue Coat Scbool, 'the Noblest
|
|
Institution in the World.'
|
|
The ground on which the Priory of the Grey Friars stood was
|
|
conferred by Henry the Eighth on the Corporation of London (who caused
|
|
the institution there of a home for poor boys and girls).
|
|
Subsequently, Edward the Sixth caused the old Priory to be properly
|
|
repaired, and founded within it that noble establishment called the
|
|
Blue Coat School, or Christ's Hospital, for the education and
|
|
maintenance of orphans and the children of indigent persons.... Edward
|
|
would not let him (Bishop Ridley) depart till the letter was written
|
|
(to the Lord Mayor), and then charged him to deliver it himself, and
|
|
signify his special request and commandment that no time might be lost
|
|
in proposing what was convenient, and apprising him of the
|
|
proceedings. The work was zealously undertaken, Ridley himself
|
|
engaging in it; and the result was, the founding of Christ's
|
|
Hospital for the Education of Poor Children. (The king endowed several
|
|
other charities at the same time.) 'Lord God,' said he, 'I yield
|
|
thee most hearty thanks that thou hast given me life thus long, to
|
|
finish this work to the glory of thy name!' That innocent and most
|
|
exemplary life was drawing rapidly to its close, and in a few days
|
|
he rendered up his spirit to his Creator, praying God to defend the
|
|
realm from Papistry.- J. Heneage Jesse's 'London,its Celebrated
|
|
Characters and Places.'
|
|
In the Great Hall hangs a large picture of King Edward VI seated
|
|
on his throne, in a scarlet and ermined robe, holding the scepter in
|
|
his left hand, presenting with the other the Charter to the kneeling
|
|
Lord Mayor. By his side stands the Chancellor, holding the seals,
|
|
and next to him are other officers of state. Bishop Ridley kneels
|
|
before him with uplifted hands, as if supplicating a blessing on the
|
|
event; while the Aldermen, etc, with the Lord Mayor, kneel on both
|
|
sides, occupying the middle ground of the picture; and lastly, in
|
|
front, are a double row of boys on one side, and girls on the other,
|
|
from the master and matron down to the boy and girl who have stepped
|
|
forward from their respective rows, and kneel with raised hands before
|
|
the king.- Timbs's 'Curiosities of London,' p. 98.
|
|
Christ's Hospital, by ancient custom, possesses the privilege of
|
|
addressing the Sovereign on the occasion of his or her coming into the
|
|
City to partake of the hospitality of the Corporation of London.-
|
|
Ibid.
|
|
The Dining-Hall, with its lobby and organ-gallery, occupies the
|
|
entire story, which is 187 feet long, 51 feet wide, and 47 feet
|
|
high; it is lit by nine large windows, filled with stained glass on
|
|
the south side; that is, next to Westminster Hall, the noblest room in
|
|
the metropolis. Here the boys, now about 800 in number, dine; and here
|
|
are held the 'Suppings in Public,' to which visitors are admitted by
|
|
tickets, issued by the Treasurer and by the Governors of Christ's
|
|
Hospital. The tables are laid with cheese in wooden bowls; beer in
|
|
wooden piggins, poured from leathern jacks; and bread brought in large
|
|
baskets. The official company enter; the Lord Mayor, or President,
|
|
takes his seat in a state chair, made of oak from St. Catherine's
|
|
Church by the Tower; a hymn is sung, accompanied by the organ; a
|
|
'Grecian,' or head boy, reads the prayers from the pulpit, silence
|
|
being enforced by three drops of a wooden hammer. After prayer the
|
|
supper commences, and the visitors walk between the tables. At its
|
|
close, the 'trade-boys' take up the baskets, bowls, jacks, piggins,
|
|
and candlesticks, and pass in procession, the bowing to the
|
|
Governors being curiously formal. This spectacle was witnessed by
|
|
Queen Victoria and Prince Albert in 1845.
|
|
Among the more eminent Blue Coat Boys are Joshua Bames, editor
|
|
of Anacreon and Euripides; Jeremiah Markland, the eminent critic,
|
|
particularly in Greek literature; Camden, the antiquary; Bishop
|
|
Stillingfleet; Samuel Richardson, the novelist; Thomas Mitchell, the
|
|
translator of Aristophanes; Thomas Barnes, many years editor of the
|
|
London Times; Coleridge, Charles Lamb, and Leigh Hunt.
|
|
No boy is admitted before he is seven years old, or after he is
|
|
nine; and no boy can remain in the school after he is fifteen,
|
|
King's boys and 'Grecians' alone excepted. There are about 500
|
|
Governors, at the head of whom are the Sovereign and the Prince of
|
|
Wales. The qualification for a Governor is payment of L500.- Ibid.
|
|
GENERAL NOTE
|
|
One hears much about the 'hideous Blue-Laws of Connecticut,' and
|
|
is accustomed to shudder piously when they are mentioned. There are
|
|
people in America- and even in England!- who imagine that they were
|
|
a very monument of malignity, pitilessness, and inhumanity; whereas,
|
|
in reality they were about the first sweeping departure from judicial
|
|
atrocity which the 'civilized' world had seen. This humane and kindly
|
|
Blue-Law code, of two hundred and forty years ago, stands all by
|
|
itself, with ages of bloody law on the further side of it, and a
|
|
century and three-quarters of bloody English law on this side of it.
|
|
There has never been a time- under the Blue-Laws or any other-
|
|
when above fourteen crimes were punishable by death in Connecticut.
|
|
But in England, within the memory of men who are still hale in body
|
|
and mind, two hundred and twenty-three crimes were punishable by
|
|
death!* These facts are worth knowing- and worth thinking about, too.
|
|
|
|
* See Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull's Blue Laws, True and False, p. 11.
|
|
|
|
THE END
|